Selected quad for the lemma: law_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
law_n word_n wrath_n write_v 209 3 5.1763 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A34262 The Confessions of the faith of all the Christian and Reformed churches which purely profess the holy doctrine of the gospel in all the kingdoms, nations, and provinces of Europe, with the order of time when they were written, and an exact table of the principal articles of faith, which in every confession is debated : wherein the obsure and difficult places are explained, and those things which may in shew seem to contradict each other, are plainly and modestly reconciled, and such points as yet hang in suspence, are sincerely pointed at : freely submitted to all Reformed Churches, as a means to knit and unite all the churches of Christ in one bond of love, for the avoiding of hereafter, discords and schismes in these dangerous time. 1656 (1656) Wing C5803; ESTC R16415 482,755 587

There are 41 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

which_o be_v the_o save_a power_n of_o god_n no_o man_n shall_v 1_o rom_n 1_o witting_o attain_v unto_o faith_n and_o salvation_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o paul_n therefore_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n 10._o rom._n 10._o of_o god_n and_o again_o how_o shall_v they_o believe_v in_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v therefore_o herein_o our_o preacher_n endeavour_v themselves_o most_o earnest_o that_o in_o our_o ecclesiastical_a meeting_n they_o may_v propound_v unto_o the_o people_n the_o sincere_a word_n of_o god_n without_o all_o mixture_n or_o invention_n of_o man_n for_o which_o cause_n also_o they_o do_v by_o a_o ancient_a custom_n recite_v in_o the_o mother_n and_o vulgar_a tongue_n which_o may_v be_v understand_v of_o all_o not_o only_o those_o chapter_n which_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v read_v out_o of_o the_o gospel_n at_o certain_a time_n but_o also_o all_o other_o part_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o do_v exhort_v the_o people_n with_o a_o earnest_a desire_n to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o frequent_v those_o ecclesiastical_a meeting_n that_o by_o the_o diligent_a teach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o often_o repeat_v it_o in_o their_o sermon_n they_o may_v first_o teach_v the_o people_n repentance_n and_o faith_n and_o then_o the_o use_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n prepare_v they_o to_o the_o right_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o afterward_o also_o both_o while_o the_o sacrament_n be_v administer_v and_o after_o they_o be_v administer_v they_o do_v convenient_o instruct_v they_o in_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n command_v and_o chief_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o do_v appertain_v to_o the_o lead_n of_o a_o honest_a life_n and_o such_o a_o one_o as_o beseem_v a_o christian_a profession_n as_o christ_n say_v teach_v they_o to_o keep_v 28._o matth_n 28._o all_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v command_v you_o in_o this_o place_n also_o be_v teach_v very_o diligent_o and_o as_o the_o matter_n require_v touch_v the_o difference_n which_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v betwixt_o the_o word_n or_o doctrine_n and_o work_v of_o the_o law_n and_o betwixt_o the_o word_n and_o force_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n the_o word_n or_o ministry_n of_o the_o law_n and_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v the_o word_n of_o death_n fear_n and_o of_o the_o letter_n also_o the_o word_n of_o wrath_n and_o the_o word_n of_o malediction_n but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n be_v the_o ministry_n of_o say_v and_o the_o spirit_n of_o clearness_n or_o glory_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o word_n of_o grace_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n the_o word_n of_o comfort_n and_o the_o messenger_n of_o peace_n of_o they_o both_o the_o apostle_n write_v thus_o the_o letter_n kill_v but_o the_o spirit_n quicken_v and_o christ_n say_v the_o word_n which_o i_o speak_v be_v spirit_n and_o life_n also_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o this_o confession_n begin_v with_o these_o word_n this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o sin_n &c_n &c_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v before_o 6._o 2_o cor._n 3._o john_n 6._o in_o the_o four_o section_n whereunto_o all_o that_o chapter_n appertain_v out_o of_o the_o french_a confession_n we_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o law_n be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n howbeit_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o truth_n and_o substance_n of_o they_o do_v abide_v in_o he_o in_o who_o they_o be_v all_o fulfil_v yet_o we_o must_v use_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n both_o to_o frame_v our_o life_n aright_o and_o also_o that_o we_o may_v so_o much_o the_o more_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o belgia_n we_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o ceremony_n figure_n and_o shadow_n of_o the_o law_n have_v cease_v at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o now_o even_o the_o use_n of_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v take_v away_o and_o abolish_v among_o christian_n yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o truth_n and_o substance_n of_o they_o do_v remain_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n in_o who_o they_o be_v all_o fulfil_v and_o therefore_o we_o do_v still_o use_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n to_o confirm_v ourselves_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o lead_v a_o honest_a life_n unto_o god_n glory_n according_a to_o his_o will_n the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n do_v by_o the_o way_n mention_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o end_n thereof_o in_o the_o four_o and_o five_o article_n which_o we_o have_v place_v in_o the_o nine_o section_n wherein_o justification_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v handle_v out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n and_o that_o the_o benefit_n of_o this_o mediator_n may_v be_v know_v unto_o mankind_n and_o apply_v unto_o we_o there_o be_v a_o promise_n give_v straight_o in_o the_o begin_n after_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n and_o afterward_o often_o time_n repeat_v and_o by_o voice_n of_o the_o prophet_n declare_v but_o most_o clear_o be_v it_o recite_v by_o the_o very_a son_n and_o after_o ward_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o there_o be_v a_o ministry_n institute_v to_o teach_v and_o to_o spread_v abroad_o that_o promise_n also_o there_o be_v a_o church_n make_v and_o often_o renew_a by_o the_o same_o very_a voice_n touch_v the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o atonement_n by_o this_o ministry_n the_o son_n of_o god_n always_o be_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v effectual_a in_o the_o believer_n as_o it_o be_v say_v rom._n 1._o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n unto_o salvation_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v and_o he_o do_v renew_v this_o ministry_n when_o he_o say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o do_v i_o send_v you_o also_o go_v and_o preach_v repentance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o my_o name_n he_o will_v that_o sin_n shall_v be_v reprove_v in_o all_o mankind_n as_o he_o say_v the_o spirit_n shall_v reprove_v the_o world_n of_o sin_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o in_o i_o and_o rom._n 1._o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n against_o all_o ungodliness_n and_o unrighteousness_n of_o man_n god_n will_v have_v his_o wrath_n to_o be_v acknowledge_v against_o all_o sin_n and_o chief_o against_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o son_n as_o he_o say_v in_o the_o psalm_n kiss_v the_o son_n lest_o he_o be_v angry_a and_o so_o you_o perish_v from_o the_o way_n etc._n etc._n he_o will_v have_v we_o true_o to_o be_v put_v in_o great_a fear_n by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o our_o darkness_n of_o our_o horrible_a wickedness_n and_o our_o stubbornness_n and_o true_o god_n himself_o do_v amaze_v our_o heart_n with_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o anger_n as_o ezekiah_n say_v like_o a_o lion_n he_o break_v all_o my_o bone_n and_o to_o this_o judgement_n he_o do_v not_o only_o use_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o law_n and_o of_o the_o gospel_n but_o also_o all_o calamity_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o law_n admonish_v we_o of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o call_v we_o to_o repentance_n now_o when_o the_o mind_n be_v terrify_v by_o this_o voice_n that_o reprove_v sin_n then_o let_v it_o hear_v the_o peculiar_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n touch_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o let_v he_o be_v assure_v that_o his_o sin_n be_v free_o remit_v for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n his_o sake_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v our_o atonement_n and_o that_o of_o mercy_n not_o for_o any_o contrition_n or_o love_n of_o we_o out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o wirtemberge_n of_o the_o law_n chap._n 6._o we_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n whereof_o the_o ten_o commandment_n be_v a_o abridgement_n do_v command_v the_o best_a the_o most_o just_a and_o most_o perfect_a work_n and_o that_o man_n be_v not_o only_o bind_v to_o obey_v the_o moral_a precept_n of_o the_o law_n but_o also_o if_o he_o shall_v do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n in_o such_o perfection_n and_o integrity_n as_o the_o law_n require_v that_o he_o shall_v indeed_o be_v count_v just_a before_o god_n for_o his_o work_n and_o shall_v obtain_v eternal_a salvation_n by_o his_o merit_n but_o whereas_o some_o man_n do_v think_v that_o man_n can_v come_v to_o that_o state_n in_o this_o life_n as_o to_o be_v able_a by_o his_o work_n not_o only_o to_o fulfil_v the_o ten_o commandment_n but_o also_o to_o do_v more_o and_o great_a work_n then_o be_v
many_o disputation_n in_o saint_n augustine_n and_o these_o be_v his_o word_n forsomuch_o as_o by_o the_o law_n god_n show_v to_o man_n his_o infirmity_n that_o fly_v unto_o his_o mercy_n by_o faith_n he_o may_v be_v save_v for_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o carry_v both_o the_o law_n and_o mercy_n in_o his_o mouth_n the_o law_n to_o convict_v the_o proud_a and_o mercy_n to_o justify_v those_o that_o be_v humble_v therefore_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v reveal_v upon_o all_o that_o believe_v and_o the_o milevitan_a synole_n write_v be_v not_o this_o sufficient_o declare_v that_o the_o law_n work_v this_o that_o sin_n shall_v be_v know_v and_o so_o against_o the_o victory_n of_o sin_n man_n shall_v fly_v to_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o his_o promise_n that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v be_v seek_v unto_o for_o deliverance_n and_o man_n may_v begin_v to_o have_v a_o righteousness_n howbeit_o not_o his_o own_o but_o god_n of_o good_a work_n when_o as_o we_o do_v teach_v in_o our_o church_n the_o most_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o comfort_n of_o faith_n we_o join_v there_o with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o good_a work_n to_o wit_n that_o obedience_n unto_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v requisite_a in_o they_o that_o be_v reconcile_v for_o the_o gospel_n preach_v newness_n of_o life_n according_a to_o that_o say_n i_o will_v put_v my_o law_n in_o their_o heart_n this_o new_a life_n therefore_o must_v be_v a_o obedience_n towards_o god_n the_o gospel_n also_o preach_v repentance_n and_o faith_n can_v be_v but_o only_o in_o they_o that_o do_v repent_v because_o that_o faith_n do_v comfort_v the_o heart_n in_o contrition_n and_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o sin_n as_o paul_n say_v be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n and_o of_o repentance_n he_o say_v rom._n 6._o our_o old_a man_n be_v crucify_v that_o the_o body_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v abolish_v that_o we_o may_v no_o more_o serve_v sin_n and_o isaiah_n say_v where_o will_v the_o lord_n dwell_v in_o a_o contrite_a and_o humble_a spirit_n etc._n etc._n second_o among_o good_a work_n the_o chief_a and_o that_o which_o be_v the_o chief_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v faith_n which_o do_v bring_v forth_o many_o other_o virtue_n which_o can_v never_o be_v in_o man_n except_o their_o heart_n have_v first_o receive_v to_o believe_v how_o shall_v they_o call_v on_o he_o in_o who_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v so_o long_o as_o man_n mind_n be_v in_o doubt_n whether_o god_n hear_v they_o or_o not_o so_o long_o as_o ever_o they_o think_v that_o god_n have_v reject_v they_o they_o do_v never_o true_o call_v upon_o god_n but_o when_o as_o once_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v his_o mercy_n through_o faith_n than_o we_o fly_v unto_o god_n we_o love_v he_o we_o call_v upon_o he_o hope_v in_o he_o look_v for_o his_o help_n obey_v he_o in_o affliction_n because_o we_o do_v now_o know_v ourselves_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o this_o our_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v our_o affliction_n do_v please_v god_n these_o service_n do_v faith_n bring_v forth_o very_o well_o therefore_o say_v ambrose_n faith_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o a_o good_a will_n and_o of_o just_a deal_n our_o adversary_n will_v seem_v very_o honourable_o to_o set_v out_o the_o doctrine_n of_o good_a work_n and_o yet_o concern_v these_o spiritual_a work_n to_o wit_n faith_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o faith_n in_o prayer_n and_o in_o all_o matter_n counsel_n and_o danger_n of_o this_o life_n they_o speak_v never_o a_o word_n and_o indeed_o none_o can_v ever_o speak_v well_o of_o these_o exercise_n if_o the_o conscience_n be_v leave_v in_o doubt_n and_o if_o they_o know_v not_o that_o god_n require_v faith_n as_o a_o special_a worship_n of_o he_o and_o when_o as_o that_o huge_a show_n of_o outward_a work_n be_v cast_v as_o a_o mist_n before_o man_n eye_n the_o mind_n especial_o such_o as_o be_v not_o well_o instruct_v be_v lead_v away_o from_o behold_v these_o inward_a exercise_n now_o it_o be_v very_o requisite_a that_o man_n shall_v be_v teach_v and_o instruct_v concern_v these_o inward_a work_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o these_o they_o be_v that_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o godly_a and_o hypocrite_n as_o for_o exernall_a worship_n external_a ceremony_n and_o other_o outward_a work_n the_o very_a hypocrite_n can_v perform_v they_o but_o these_o service_n and_o duty_n belong_v only_o to_o the_o true_a church_n true_a repentance_n fear_n faith_n prayer_n etc._n etc._n these_o kind_n of_o worship_n be_v especial_o require_v and_o commend_v in_o the_o scripture_n psal_n 49._o offer_v unto_o god_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o call_v on_o i_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n etc._n etc._n three_o by_o this_o faith_n which_o do_v comfort_v the_o heart_n in_o repentance_n we_o do_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n who_o be_v give_v we_o to_o be_v our_o governor_n and_o helper_n that_o we_o shall_v resist_v sin_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o more_o and_o more_o acknowledge_v our_o own_o weakness_n and_o that_o the_o knowledge_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o faith_n may_v increase_v in_o we_o wherefore_o our_o obedience_n to_o god_n and_o a_o new_a life_n ought_v to_o increase_v in_o we_o as_o saint_n paul_n say_v we_o must_v be_v renew_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n that_o the_o new_a law_n may_v be_v wrought_v in_o we_o and_o his_o image_n which_o have_v create_v we_o be_v renew_v etc._n etc._n four_o we_o teach_v also_o how_o this_o obedience_n which_o be_v but_o begin_v only_o and_o not_o perfect_a do_v please_v god_n for_o in_o this_o so_o great_a infirmity_n and_o uncleanness_n of_o nature_n the_o saint_n do_v not_o satisfy_v the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o faithful_a therefore_o have_v need_n of_o comfort_n that_o they_o may_v know_v how_o their_o slender_a and_o imperfect_a obedience_n do_v please_v god_n it_o do_v not_o please_v he_o as_o satisfy_v his_o law_n but_o because_o the_o person_n themselves_o be_v reconcile_v and_o make_v righteous_a through_o christ_n and_o do_v believe_v that_o their_o weakness_n be_v forgive_v they_o as_o paul_n teach_v there_o be_v now_o no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o which_o be_v in_o christ_n etc._n etc._n albeit_o then_o that_o this_o new_a obedience_n be_v far_o from_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o it_o be_v righteousness_n and_o be_v worthy_a of_o a_o reward_n even_o because_o that_o the_o person_n be_v reconcile_v and_o thus_o we_o must_v judge_v of_o those_o work_n which_o be_v indeed_o high_o to_o be_v commend_v namely_o observation_n namely_o look_v the_o 7._o observation_n that_o they_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o be_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n and_o do_v deserve_v a_o reward_n nevertheless_o this_o confolation_n be_v first_o to_o be_v hold_v touch_v the_o person_n which_o be_v very_o necessary_a in_o the_o conflict_n of_o the_o confcience_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n free_o by_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o person_n be_v just_a that_o be_v reconcile_v and_o a_o heir_n of_o eternal_a life_n through_o christ_n and_o then_o our_o obedience_n do_v please_v god_n according_a to_o that_o say_n now_o you_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n for_o our_o work_n may_v not_o be_v set_v against_o the_o wrath_n and_o judgement_n of_o god_n but_o the_o terror_n of_o sin_n and_o death_n must_v be_v overcome_v by_o faith_n and_o trust_n in_o the_o mediator_n christ_n as_o it_o be_v write_v o_o death_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o death_n and_o john_n 6._o christ_n say_v this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n which_o send_v i_o that_o every_o one_o which_o see_v the_o son_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o saint_n paul_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n and_o the_o church_n always_o pray_v for_o give_v we_o our_o trespass_n and_o thus_o do_v the_o father_n teach_v concern_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o concern_v faith_n augustine_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o 30._o psalm_n say_v deliver_v i_o in_o thy_o righteousness_n for_o there_o be_v a_o righteousness_n of_o god_n which_o be_v make_v we_o when_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o but_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n lest_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o have_v a_o righteousness_n of_o himself_o for_o as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v to_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o justifi_v the_o wicked_a that_o be_v that_o of_o a_o wicked_a make_v a_o righteous_a man_n if_o god_n shall_v deal_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o
only_o as_o by_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o holy_a father_n have_v declare_v in_o the_o counsel_n hold_v at_o nice_a ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n therefore_o we_o detest_v every_o heresy_n which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o sueveland_n also_o we_o believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v true_a god_n be_v also_o make_v true_a man_n his_o nature_n not_o be_v confound_v but_o so_o unite_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n that_o they_o shall_v never_o hereafter_o be_v dissolve_v neither_o do_v we_o differ_v any_o thing_n in_o those_o point_n which_o the_o church_n be_v teach_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n do_v believe_v concern_v our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n conceive_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o who_o at_o the_o length_n after_o he_o have_v discharge_v the_o office_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n die_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v bury_v and_o descend_v into_o hell_n and_o the_o three_o day_n he_o be_v call_v back_o from_o the_o dead_a unto_o life_n eternal_a the_o which_o life_n when_o he_o have_v by_o divers_a argument_n prove_v unto_o witness_n hereunto_o appoint_v he_o be_v carry_v up_o into_o heaven_n to_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n from_o whence_o we_o look_v that_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v nevertheless_o present_a with_o his_o church_n that_o he_o do_v renew_v and_o sanctify_v it_o and_o as_o his_o only_a belove_a spouse_n beautify_v it_o with_o all_o sort_n of_o ornament_n of_o virtue_n and_o in_o these_o thing_n we_o do_v nothing_o vary_v from_o the_o father_n nor_o from_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o christian_n we_o think_v it_o sufficient_a after_o this_o sort_n to_o testify_v our_o faith_n the_o seven_o section_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n the_o latter_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n chap._n 12._o we_o teach_v that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v set_v down_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n what_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v what_o be_v good_a and_o just_a or_o what_o be_v evil_a and_o unjust_a we_o therefore_o confess_v that_o the_o law_n be_v good_a and_o holy_a and_o that_o this_o law_n be_v by_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n either_o either_o write_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o so_o be_v call_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n or_o engrave_v in_o the_o two_o table_n of_o 5._o exod_n 20._o deut._n 5._o stone_n and_o more_o large_o expound_v in_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n for_o plainness_n sake_n we_o divide_v it_o unto_o the_o moral_a law_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o commandment_n or_o the_o two_o table_n expound_v in_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n and_o into_o the_o ceremonial_a which_o do_v appoint_v ceremony_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o into_o the_o judicial_a law_n which_o be_v occupy_v about_o political_a and_o domestical_a affair_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o 12._o the_o look_v the_o 1._o observat_fw-la upon_o this_o confession_n deut._n 4._o &_o 12._o whole_a will_n of_o god_n and_o all_o necessary_a precept_n for_o every_o part_n of_o this_o life_n be_v full_o deliver_v in_o this_o law_n for_o otherwise_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v forbid_v that_o any_o thing_n shall_v by_o either_o add_v or_o take_v away_o from_o this_o law_n neither_o will_v he_o have_v command_v we_o to_o go_v straight_o forward_o in_o this_o and_o notto_n decline_v out_o of_o the_o way_n either_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a we_o teach_v that_o this_o law_n be_v not_o give_v to_o man_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v justify_v by_o keep_v it_o but_o that_o by_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o we_o may_v rather_o acknowledge_v our_o infirmity_n sin_n and_o condemnation_n and_o so_o despair_v of_o our_o own_o strength_n may_v turn_v unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v plain_o the_o law_n work_v 3._o rom._n 3._o 4._o gal._n 3._o wrath_n and_o by_o the_o law_n come_v knowledge_n of_o sin_n and_o if_o there_o have_v be_v a_o law_n give_v which_o can_v have_v justify_v and_o give_v we_o life_n sure_o righteousness_n shall_v have_v be_v by_o the_o law_n but_o the_o spirit_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o law_n have_v conclude_v all_o under_o sin_n that_o the_o promise_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o they_o which_o believe_v therefore_o the_o law_n be_v our_o schoolmaster_n to_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o faith_n for_o neither_o can_v there_o ever_o neither_o at_o this_o day_n can_v 8._o can_v look_v the_o second_o observat_fw-la upon_o this_o confession_n rom._n 8._o any_o flesh_n satisfy_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o fulfil_v it_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o weakness_n in_o our_o flesh_n which_o remain_v and_o stick_v fast_o in_o we_o even_o to_o our_o last_o breath_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v again_o that_o which_o the_o law_n can_v not_o perform_v in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v weak_a through_o the_o flesh_n that_o do_v god_n perform_v send_v his_o own_o son_n in_o similitude_n of_o fl●sh_n subject_a to_o sin_n therefore_o christ_n be_v the_o perfiter_n of_o the_o law_n and_o our_o fulfil_n of_o it_o who_o as_o he_o take_v away_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n when_o he_o be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o we_o so_o do_v he_o communicate_v unto_o 3._o gal._n 3._o we_o by_o faith_n his_o fulfil_n thereof_o and_o his_o righteousness_n and_o obedience_n be_v impute_v unto_o we_o the_o law_n of_o god_n therefore_o be_v confession_n be_v look_v the_o 3._o observation_n on_o this_o confession_n thus_o far_o abrogate_a as_o that_o it_o do_v not_o henceforth_o condemn_v we_o neither_o work_n wrath_n in_o we_o for_o we_o be_v under_o grace_n and_o not_o under_o the_o law_n moreover_o christ_n do_v fulfil_v all_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o law_n wherefore_o the_o shadow_n cease_v when_o the_o body_n come_v so_o that_o in_o christ_n we_o have_v now_o all_o truth_n and_o fullness_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o therefore_o disdain_v or_o reject_v the_o law_n we_o remember_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o come_v not_o to_o destroy_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n but_o to_o fulfil_v they_o we_o know_v that_o observat_fw-la that_o look_v the_o 4._o observat_fw-la in_o the_o law_n be_v describe_v unto_o we_o the_o kind_n of_o virtue_n and_o vice_n we_o know_v that_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o law_n observat_fw-la law_n look_v the_o 5._o observat_fw-la if_o it_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o gospel_n be_v very_o profitable_a to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o read_n of_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v banish_v out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o although_o the_o countenance_n of_o moses_n be_v cover_v with_o a_o veil_n yet_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v that_o the_o veil_n be_v take_v away_o and_o abolish_v by_o christ_n we_o condemn_v all_o thing_n which_o the_o old_a or_o new_a heretic_n have_v teach_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o also_o of_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o the_o letter_n chap._n 13._o the_o gospel_n indeed_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o law_n for_o the_o law_n work_v wrath_n and_o do_v denounce_v a_o curse_n but_o the_o gospel_n do_v preach_v grace_n and_o a_o blessing_n john_n say_v also_o the_o law_n be_v give_v by_o 2._o john_n 2._o moses_n but_o grace_n and_o truth_n come_v by_o jesus_n christ_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o they_o which_o be_v before_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o law_n be_v not_o altogether_o destiture_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o they_o have_v notable_a evangelicall_n promise_n such_o as_o these_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n in_o thy_o seed_n 3_o gen._n 3._o gen._n 22._o gen._n 49._o deut._n 18._o acts._n 3_o shall_v all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v bless_v the_o sceptre_n shall_v not_o be_v take_v from_o juda_n until_o silocome_n the_o lord_n shall_v raise_v up_o a_o prophet_n from_o among_o his_o own_o brethren_n etc._n etc._n and_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o father_n have_v two_o kind_n of_o promise_n reveal_v unto_o they_o even_o as_o we_o have_v for_o some_o of_o they_o be_v of_o present_a and_o transitory_a thing_n such_o as_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n and_o of_o victory_n and_o such_o as_o be_v now_o a_o day_n concern_v our_o daily_a bread_n othersome_a there_o be_v then_o and_o also_o be_v now_o of_o heavenly_a and_o everlasting_a thing_n as_o of_o god_n favour_n remission_n of_o sin_n
saint_n paul_n whereby_o every_o christian_a man_n do_v assure_v himself_o that_o all_o righteousness_n and_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v for_o only_a in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n and_o be_v also_o assure_v that_o he_o must_v at_o all_o time_n use_v all_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n as_o to_o the_o profit_n of_o our_o neighbour_n so_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o that_o all_o which_o he_o have_v be_v to_o be_v arbitrate_v and_o moderate_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v the_o giver_n of_o true_a adoption_n and_o true_a liberty_n and_o that_o he_o ought_v free_o to_o permit_v they_o to_o be_v appoint_v and_o bestow_v both_o to_o the_o relief_n of_o his_o neighbour_n and_o also_o to_o the_o advancement_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n see_v that_o we_o retain_v this_o liberty_n we_o show_v ourselves_o to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n when_o we_o betray_v it_o to_o man_n addict_v ourselves_o to_o their_o invention_n we_o do_v like_o runagate_n forsake_v christ_n and_o fly_v to_o man_n the_o which_o thing_n we_o do_v so_o much_o the_o more_o wicked_o because_o that_o christ_n have_v free_v we_o by_o his_o blood_n not_o by_o a_o vile_a or_o common_a price_n and_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o himself_o from_o the_o deadly_a slavery_n of_o satan_n and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o saint_n paul_n write_v to_o the_o galathian_o do_v so_o much_o detest_v it_o that_o they_o have_v addict_v themselves_o to_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n though_o they_o be_v command_v of_o god_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o as_o we_o declare_v before_o that_o may_v be_v far_o better_a excuse_v then_o to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o yoke_n of_o those_o ceremony_n which_o man_n have_v feign_v of_o their_o own_o brain_n for_o he_o do_v write_v and_o that_o true_o that_o they_o which_o admit_v the_o yoke_n of_o those_o ceremony_n despise_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o count_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o thing_n of_o nothing_o and_o thereupon_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v afraid_a lest_o that_o he_o have_v bestow_v his_o labour_n among_o they_o in_o vain_a and_o he_o exhort_v they_o that_o they_o will_v stand_v steadfast_a in_o that_o liberty_n wherewith_o christ_n have_v make_v we_o free_a and_o not_o to_o be_v entangle_v again_o with_o the_o yoke_n of_o bondage_n now_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o monkery_n be_v nothing_o else_o then_o bondage_n of_o tradition_n devise_v by_o man_n and_o indeed_o of_o such_o as_o paul_n have_v by_o name_n condemn_v in_o the_o place_n which_o we_o allege_v for_o undoubted_o they_o which_o profess_v monkery_n do_v addict_v themselves_o to_o those_o invention_n of_o man_n for_o hope_n of_o merit_n and_o hereupon_o it_o be_v that_o they_o make_v it_o so_o heinous_a a_o offence_n to_o forsake_v those_o invention_n and_o to_o embrace_v the_o liberty_n of_o christ_n therefore_o see_v 6._o 1_o cor._n 6._o that_o as_o well_o our_o body_n as_o our_o spirit_n belong_v unto_o god_n and_o that_o in_o a_o double_a respect_n to_o wit_n of_o our_o condition_n and_o redemption_n it_o can_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o christian_n to_o make_v themselves_o slave_n to_o this_o monastical_a servitude_n much_o less_o than_o for_o profane_a servant_n to_o change_v their_o master_n moreover_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o by_o such_o like_a bondage_n and_o vow_n to_o live_v after_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n a_o certain_a necessity_n as_o it_o always_o use_v to_o be_v of_o transgress_v the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v bring_v in_o for_o the_o law_n of_o god_n do_v require_v that_o a_o christian_a man_n shall_v as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o he_o 15._o matth._n 15._o employ_v his_o service_n to_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o magistrate_n his_o parent_n kindred_n and_o other_o and_o of_o all_o those_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v his_o neighbour_n and_o bring_v to_o he_o to_o be_v deliver_v in_o what_o place_n time_n or_o manner_n soever_o their_o necessity_n shall_v require_v it_o then_o let_v he_o embrace_v that_o kind_n of_o live_v whereby_o he_o may_v chief_o provide_v for_o the_o affair_n of_o his_o neighbour_n neither_o let_v he_o choose_v a_o single_a life_n but_o let_v he_o know_v that_o to_o renounce_v marriage_n and_o to_o make_v himself_o a_o eunuch_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n that_o be_v to_o further_a godliness_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o peculiar_a and_o a_o special_a gift_n of_o god_n for_o that_o edict_n which_o paul_n do_v publish_v stand_v firm_a and_o steadfast_a neither_o can_v any_o vow_n of_o man_n make_v it_o frustrate_v for_o the_o avoid_n of_o whoredom_n let_v every_o man_n he_o except_v none_o have_v his_o own_o wife_n and_o every_o woman_n she_o own_o husband_n for_o all_o man_n do_v not_o receive_v that_o word_n of_o take_v upon_o they_o a_o single_a life_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o christ_n himself_o do_v witness_v than_o who_o no_o man_n do_v more_o certain_o know_v &_o more_o faithful_o teach_v either_o of_o what_o force_n man_n nature_n be_v or_o what_o be_v acceptable_a to_o his_o father_n now_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o by_o these_o monastical_a vow_n they_o which_o do_v make_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o man_n so_o that_o they_o think_v it_o not_o lawful_a to_o show_v themselves_o obedient_a and_o dutiful_a any_o long_o either_o to_o the_o magistrate_n or_o to_o their_o parent_n or_o to_o any_o man_n only_o the_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o monastery_n except_v nor_o to_o relieve_v they_o with_o their_o substance_n and_o least_o of_o all_o to_o marry_v a_o wife_n though_o they_o be_v great_o burn_v and_o therefore_o they_o do_v necessary_o fall_v into_o all_o kind_n of_o dishonesty_n of_o life_n see_v therefore_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o these_o monastical_a vow_n do_v make_v a_o man_n which_o be_v free_v from_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o danger_n not_o so_o much_o of_o the_o bondage_n of_o man_n as_o of_o satan_n and_o that_o they_o do_v bring_v in_o a_o certain_a necessity_n of_o transgress_v the_o law_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o all_o such_o tradition_n as_o be_v devise_v by_o man_n and_o that_o therefore_o they_o be_v manifest_o contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n we_o do_v not_o without_o cause_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v make_v frustrate_a see_v that_o not_o only_o the_o write_a law_n but_o also_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n do_v command_v to_o disannul_v a_o promise_n if_o be_v keep_v it_o be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o good_a manner_n not_o only_o to_o religion_n therefore_o we_o can_v not_o withstand_v any_o which_o will_v change_v a_o monastical_a life_n which_o be_v undoubted_o a_o bondage_n to_o satan_n for_o a_o christian_a life_n as_o also_o we_o can_v not_o withstand_v other_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n who_o marry_v wife_n have_v embrace_v a_o kind_n of_o life_n whereof_o their_o neighbour_n may_v look_v for_o more_o profit_n and_o great_a honesty_n of_o life_n then_o of_o that_o kind_n wherein_o they_o live_v before_o to_o conclude_v neither_o do_v we_o take_v upon_o we_o to_o drive_v they_o from_o the_o right_n of_o wedlock_n who_o among_o we_o have_v persevere_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whatsoever_o chastity_n they_o have_v vow_v for_o the_o cause_n before_o specify_v see_v that_o saint_n paul_n the_o chief_a maintainer_n of_o true_a chastity_n do_v admit_v even_o a_o bishop_n to_o be_v a_o marry_a man_n for_o we_o have_v lawful_o prefer_v this_o one_o law_n of_o god_n before_o all_o law_n of_o man_n for_o the_o avoid_n of_o whoredom_n let_v every_o man_n have_v his_o own_o wife_n which_o law_n true_o for_o that_o it_o have_v be_v reject_v so_o long_a time_n all_o kind_n of_o lust_n even_o those_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v name_v be_v it_o speak_v with_o reverence_n to_o your_o sacred_a majesty_n o_o noble_a cesar_n have_v more_o then_o horrible_o overthrow_v this_o ecclesiastical_a order_n so_o that_o at_o this_o day_n among_o man_n there_o be_v none_o more_o abominable_a than_o they_o which_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o priest_n the_o nineteenth_o section_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n the_o latter_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n of_o magistracy_n chap._n 30._o the_o magistracy_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o it_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n himself_o for_o the_o peace_n and_o quietness_n of_o mankind_n and_o so_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v the_o chief_a place_n in_o the_o world_n if_o he_o be_v a_o adversary_n to_o the_o church_n he_o may_v hinder_v and_o disturb_v it_o very_o much_o but_o if_o he_o be_v a_o friend_n and_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n he_o be_v a_o most_o profitable_a and_o excellent_a member_n thereof_o which_o
that_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o rule_v preserve_v purge_v and_o increase_v his_o church_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v and_o redeem_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n amen_n the_o faithful_a and_o subject_n to_o the_o emperor_n majesty_n john_n duke_n of_o saxony_n elector_n george_n marquis_n of_o brandembrough_n ernest_n duke_n of_o luneborough_n philip_n the_o landgrave_n of_o the_o hess_n john_n frederick_n duke_n of_o saxony_n francis_n duke_n of_o luneborough_n wolfgang_n prince_n of_o anhalt_n the_o senate_n and_o magistrate_n of_o nurnborough_n the_o senate_n of_o reutling_n out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n artic._n 23._o of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n by_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n this_o part_n also_o of_o doctrine_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n that_o bear_v the_o sword_n and_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o law_n and_o judgement_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a civil_a state_n be_v godly_o set_v forth_o and_o by_o great_a travel_n and_o many_o writing_n the_o manifold_a and_o great_a fury_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o other_o fantastical_a man_n be_v refute_v we_o teach_v therefore_o that_o in_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o god_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o degree_n of_o the_o civil_a state_n be_v avouch_v and_o that_o magistrate_n law_n order_n in_o judgement_n and_o the_o lawful_a society_n of_o mankind_n be_v not_o by_o chance_n spring_v up_o among_o man_n and_o although_o there_o be_v many_o horrible_a confusion_n which_o grow_v from_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o madness_n of_o man_n yet_o the_o lawful_a government_n and_o society_n of_o man_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n and_o whatsoever_o order_n be_v yet_o leave_v by_o the_o exceed_a goodness_n of_o god_n it_o be_v preserve_v for_o the_o church_n sake_n as_o it_o be_v say_v rom._n 13._o and_o psal_n 126._o except_o the_o lord_n keep_v the_o city_n in_o vain_a he_o watch_v that_o keep_v it_o etc._n etc._n therefore_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v thing_n good_a to_o bear_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o magistrate_n to_o be_v a_o judge_n to_o be_v a_o minister_n to_o execute_v judgement_n to_o make_v lawful_a war_n and_o to_o be_v a_o soldier_n in_o lawful_a war_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o christian_a man_n may_v use_v these_o thing_n as_o he_o use_v meat_n drink_n medicine_n buy_v and_o sell_v neither_o do_v he_o sin_n that_o be_v a_o magistrate_n and_o discharge_v his_o vocation_n that_o exercise_v judgement_n that_o go_v to_o war_n that_o punish_v lawful_o those_o that_o be_v condemn_v etc._n etc._n and_o subject_n owe_v unto_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n obedience_n as_o paul_n say_v roman_n 13._o not_o only_o because_o of_o wrath_n that_o be_v for_o fear_v of_o corporal_a punishment_n wherewith_o the_o rebellious_a be_v reward_v by_o the_o magistrate_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n that_o be_v rebellion_n be_v a_o sin_n that_o offend_v god_n and_o withdraw_v the_o conscience_n from_o god_n this_o heavenly_a doctrine_n we_o propound_v unto_o the_o church_n which_o establish_v lawful_a authority_n and_o the_o whole_a civil_a state_n and_o we_o show_v the_o difference_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o civil_a government_n god_n will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o be_v rule_v and_o keep_v in_o order_n by_o civil_a government_n even_o those_o that_o be_v not_o regenerate_v &_o in_o this_o government_n the_o wisdom_n justice_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o mankind_n be_v most_o clear_o to_o be_v see_v his_o wisdom_n be_v declare_v by_o order_n which_o be_v in_o the_o discern_a of_o virtue_n and_o vice_n and_o in_o the_o society_n of_o mankind_n under_o lawful_a government_n and_o in_o contract_n guide_v and_o dispose_v by_o marvellous_a wisdom_n then_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n appear_v in_o civil_a government_n in_o that_o he_o will_v have_v open_a sin_n to_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o magistrate_n and_o when_o they_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n do_v not_o take_v punishment_n on_o offender_n god_n himself_o miraculous_o draw_v they_o unto_o punishment_n and_o proportionable_o do_v lay_v upon_o grievous_a sin_n grievous_a punishment_n in_o this_o life_n as_o it_o be_v say_v matth._n 26._o whosoever_o take_v the_o sword_n shall_v perish_v with_o the_o sword_n and_o heb._n 3_o whoremonger_n and_o adulterer_n god_n will_v judge_v in_o these_o punishment_n god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v see_v the_o difference_n of_o virtue_n and_o vice_n and_o will_v have_v we_o learn_v that_o god_n be_v wise_a just_a true_a and_o chaste_a the_o goodness_n of_o god_n also_o towards_o mankind_n be_v see_v in_o that_o he_o preserve_v the_o society_n of_o man_n after_o this_o order_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n do_v he_o maintain_v it_o that_o from_o thence_o his_o church_n may_v be_v gather_v and_o he_o will_v have_v commonwealth_n to_o be_v place_n for_o the_o entertainment_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o civil_a government_n be_v one_o thing_n which_o keep_v in_o order_n all_o man_n even_o those_o that_o be_v not_o regenerate_v and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o righteousness_n in_o the_o heart_n which_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o life_n and_o of_o eternal_a salvation_n which_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v effect_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o they_o that_o believe_v be_v another_o thing_n both_o these_o benefit_n god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o mankind_n and_o will_v have_v we_o to_o understand_v the_o difference_n of_o civil_a justice_n and_o light_n in_o our_o heart_n neither_o do_v the_o gospel_n condemn_v or_o overthrow_v commonwealth_n or_o family_n and_o although_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o those_o that_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n to_o give_v particular_a law_n of_o politic_a government_n yet_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v general_o teach_v this_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n first_o god_n will_v that_o the_o magistrate_n without_o all_o doubt_n shall_v sound_v forth_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n among_o man_n touch_v discipline_n according_a to_o the_o ten_o commandment_n or_o the_o law_n natural_a that_o be_v he_o will_v have_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o magistrate_n first_o sovereign_a and_o immutable_a law_n to_o be_v propound_v forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o idol_n blasphemy_n perjury_n unjust_a murder_n wander_a lust_n breach_n of_o of_o wedlock_n theft_n and_o fraud_n in_o bargain_n contract_n and_o judgement_n the_o second_o duty_n let_v the_o magistrate_n be_v a_o observer_n of_o these_o divine_a and_o immutable_a law_n which_o be_v witness_n of_o god_n and_o chief_a rule_n of_o manner_n by_o punish_v all_o those_o that_o transgress_v the_o same_o for_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o law_n without_o punishment_n and_o execution_n be_v little_a available_a to_o bridle_v and_o restrain_v man_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v by_o saint_n paul_n rom._n 13._o the_o magistrate_n be_v a_o terror_n to_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a and_o give_v honour_n to_o they_o that_o do_v well_o and_o well_o have_v it_o be_v say_v of_o old_a the_o magistrate_n be_v a_o keeper_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v of_o the_o first_o and_o second_o table_n as_o concern_v discipline_n and_o good_a order_n the_o three_o duty_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v to_o add_v unto_o the_o law_n natural_a some_o other_o law_n define_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o natural_a law_n and_o to_o keep_v and_o maintain_v the_o same_o by_o punish_v the_o transgressor_n but_o at_o no_o hand_n to_o suffer_v or_o defend_v law_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n as_o it_o be_v write_v isa_n 10._o woe_n be_v to_o they_o that_o make_v wicked_a law_n for_o kingdom_n be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n wherein_o the_o wisdom_n and_o justice_n of_o god_n that_o be_v just_a law_n ought_v to_o rule_v even_o as_o the_o wise_a king_n and_o one_o that_o fear_v god_n jehosaphat_n say_v 2_o chron._n 19_o you_o exercise_v not_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n who_o be_v with_o you_o in_o judgement_n let_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n be_v with_o you_o and_o do_v all_o thing_n diligent_o for_o although_o many_o in_o kingdom_n do_v despise_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v their_o especial_a care_n to_o hear_v and_o embrace_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o to_o cherish_v the_o church_n as_o the_o second_o psalm_n speak_v and_o now_o you_o king_n understand_v and_o be_v learned_a you_o that_o judge_v the_o earth_n and_o psal_n 23._o you_o prince_n open_v your_o gate_n that_o be_v open_v your_o kingdom_n to_o the_o gospel_n and_o give_v entertainment_n to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o isa_n 49._o and_o king_n and_o queen_n shall_v be_v thy_o nurse_n that_o be_v let_v common_a wealth_n be_v nurse_n of_o the_o church_n let_v they_o give_v entertainment_n to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o godly_a study_n let_v king_n and_o prince_n
university_n wherein_o we_o teach_v the_o gospel_n and_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a sincere_a and_o incorrupt_a doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n agree_v with_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o with_o the_o creed_n and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n and_o we_o pray_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v crucify_v for_o we_o and_o rise_v again_o that_o he_o will_v merciful_o govern_v and_o defend_v these_o church_n also_o we_o offer_v ourselves_o to_o further_a declaration_n in_o every_o article_n this_o be_v write_v anno_fw-la 1551._o july●0_n ●0_z in_o the_o town_n of_o wirtemberg_n where_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n near_o adjoin_v be_v meet_v together_o etc._n etc._n out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o wirtemberge_n the_o conclusion_n which_o be_v place_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o 35._o chapter_n we_o have_v rehearse_v those_o thing_n which_o seem_v good_a both_o to_o be_v approve_v and_o also_o to_o be_v refute_v or_o amend_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a doctrine_n and_o in_o the_o whole_a administration_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v speak_v either_o more_o brief_o or_o more_o obscure_o then_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n will_v require_v our_o preacher_n do_v promise_v that_o they_o will_v expound_v they_o more_o large_o and_o more_o clear_o that_o which_o remain_v we_o beseech_v all_o the_o godly_a through_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o only_a saviour_n that_o which_o thing_n we_o hope_v they_o will_v do_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o office_n and_o calling_n will_v take_v unto_o himself_o a_o true_a and_o earnest_a endeavour_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o hitherto_o for_o these_o many_o year_n not_o only_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n have_v decay_v and_o the_o manner_n thereof_o have_v be_v corrupt_v with_o great_a and_o horrible_a vice_n and_o they_o have_v very_o much_o degenerate_v from_o the_o honesty_n of_o our_o elder_n but_o that_o also_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v deprave_v in_o suffering_n and_o bear_v with_o corruption_n which_o if_o hereafter_o they_o be_v either_o dissemble_v or_o confirm_v every_o man_n that_o be_v but_o mean_o wise_a may_v consider_v how_o great_a evil_n be_v like_a to_o follow_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n those_o execration_n and_o curse_n be_v well_o know_v whereunto_o the_o law_n of_o god_n do_v addict_v the_o transgressor_n of_o his_o word_n and_o josias_n the_o king_n of_o juda_n be_v endue_v with_o a_o heroical_a mind_n when_o he_o repair_v the_o church_n and_o although_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v by_o his_o godly_a repentance_n and_o obedience_n mitigate_v after_o that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n be_v find_v out_o and_o well_o know_v that_o those_o punishment_n which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n at_o that_o time_n have_v deserve_v through_o the_o neglect_n of_o his_o word_n and_o their_o impietr_n may_v be_v defer_v till_o another_o time_n yet_o notwithstanding_o such_o be_v the_o severity_n of_o god_n against_o the_o contemnet_n of_o his_o word_n and_o the_o impenitent_a that_o the_o king_n although_o he_o be_v very_o godly_a can_v not_o altogether_o take_v it_o away_o from_o they_o and_o appease_v it_o now_o we_o think_v that_o in_o these_o time_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v no_o less_o yea_o much_o more_o grievous_o kindle_v and_o set_v on_o fire_n against_o the_o assembly_n of_o his_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o so_o many_o heinous_a wicked_a deed_n and_o offence_n which_o even_o in_o that_o people_n which_o glori_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v more_o evident_a then_o that_o they_o can_v be_v deny_v and_o more_o clear_a then_o that_o they_o may_v be_v excuse_v then_o in_o time_n past_a when_o as_o yet_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o make_v know_v to_o the_o world_n by_o his_o gospel_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o severe_a by_o how_o much_o his_o benefit_n be_v the_o great_a which_o he_o seem_v to_o have_v bestow_v both_o in_o the_o former_a and_o also_o at_o these_o present_a time_n upon_o unthankful_a man_n but_o many_o other_o thing_n have_v need_n of_o amendment_n in_o the_o church_n and_o ministry_n thereof_o and_o especial_o the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n justification_n and_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o single_a life_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n do_v require_v a_o godly_a amendment_n if_o these_o thing_n by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o diligence_n and_o care_n of_o all_o good_a man_n shall_v be_v restore_v according_a to_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o according_a to_o the_o true_a catholic_a consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a and_o pure_a church_n we_o shall_v not_o only_o give_v unto_o god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n a_o most_o acceptable_a worship_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n shall_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o declare_v their_o thankfulness_n and_o obedience_n in_o all_o dutiful_a manner_n that_o they_o may_v we_o true_o do_v not_o know_v of_o any_o error_n in_o our_o preacher_n either_o in_o doctrine_n or_o in_o the_o other_o administration_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o that_o they_o be_v endue_v with_o so_o great_a modesty_n and_o godliness_n that_o if_o they_o be_v admonish_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n and_o by_o the_o true_a consent_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o will_v in_o no_o case_n be_v want_v to_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o we_o and_o in_o our_o government_n we_o will_v do_v our_o endeavour_n that_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n help_v we_o none_o of_o those_o duty_n may_v be_v pretermit_v of_o we_o whereby_o we_o hope_v that_o the_o true_a quietness_n of_o the_o church_n and_o salvation_n in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v preserve_v out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o sueveland_n of_o secular_a magistrate_n chap._n 23._o in_o the_o former_a point_n we_o have_v declare_v that_o our_o preacher_n do_v place_n that_o obedience_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o magistrate_n among_o good_a work_n of_o the_o first_o degree_n and_o that_o they_o teach_v that_o every_o man_n ought_v so_o much_o the_o more_o diligent_o to_o apply_v himself_o to_o the_o public_a law_n by_o how_o much_o he_o be_v a_o more_o sincere_a christian_a and_o rich_a in_o faith_n in_o the_o next_o place_n they_o teach_v that_o to_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o a_o magistrate_n it_o be_v the_o most_o sacred_a function_n which_o can_v happen_v unto_o man_n from_o god_n whereupon_o also_o it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o they_o which_o be_v endue_v with_o public_a authority_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n call_v go_n for_o when_o as_o they_o do_v just_o and_o orderly_o behave_v themselves_o in_o their_o function_n it_o go_v well_o with_o the_o people_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o in_o life_n because_o that_o god_n do_v use_v so_o to_o moderate_v our_o affair_n that_o for_o the_o great_a part_n the_o safety_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o subject_n do_v depend_v upon_o they_o which_o be_v the_o governor_n wherefore_o none_o do_v more_o worthy_o execute_v magistracy_n than_o they_o which_o of_o all_o other_o be_v the_o most_o christian_n and_o bishop_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a man_n be_v promote_v by_o most_o godly_a emperor_n and_o king_n to_o a_o external_a government_n in_o civil_a affair_n wherein_o though_o they_o be_v religious_a and_o wise_a yet_o in_o this_o one_o point_n they_o offend_v because_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o discharge_v both_o those_o function_n sufficient_o and_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o either_o they_o shall_v be_v want_v to_o the_o church_n in_o rule_v they_o by_o the_o word_n or_o to_o the_o commonwealth_n in_o govern_v it_o by_o authority_n the_o conclusion_n these_o be_v the_o chief_a point_n most_o mighty_a and_o religious_a emperor_n wherein_o our_o preacher_n have_v somewhat_o swerve_v from_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o preacher_n be_v force_v thereunto_o by_o the_o only_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v worthy_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o tradition_n these_o thing_n be_v so_o declare_v as_o the_o shortness_n of_o time_n will_v give_v we_o leave_v we_o think_v it_o good_a to_o offer_v they_o to_o your_o sacred_a majesty_n and_o that_o to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v both_o give_v account_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o thou_o who_o next_o unto_o god_n we_o do_v chief_o honour_v and_o reverence_n and_o may_v also_o show_v how_o necessary_a it_o be_v speedy_o and_o earnest_o to_o consult_v of_o a_o way_n and_o mean_v whereby_o a_o thing_n of_o so_o great_a
very_a word_n of_o god_n be_v preach_v and_o receive_v of_o the_o faithful_a and_o that_o neither_o any_o other_o word_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v feign_v or_o to_o be_v expect_v from_o heaven_n and_o that_o now_o the_o word_n itself_o which_o be_v preach_v be_v to_o be_v regard_v not_o the_o minister_n that_o preach_v who_o although_o he_o be_v evil_a and_o a_o sinner_n nevertheless_o the_o word_n of_o god_n abide_v true_a and_o good_a neither_o do_v we_o think_v that_o therefore_o the_o outward_a preach_n be_v to_o be_v think_v as_o fruitless_a because_o the_o instruction_n in_o true_a religion_n depend_v on_o the_o inward_a illumination_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o it_o be_v write_v no_o man_n shall_v teach_v his_o neighbour_n for_o all_o 6._o jer._n 12._o 1_o cor._n 3._o john_n 6._o man_n shall_v know_v i_o and_o he_o that_o water_v or_o he_o that_o plant_v be_v nothing_o but_o god_n who_o give_v the_o increase_n for_o albeit_o no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o christ_n unless_o he_o be_v draw_v by_o the_o heavenly_a father_n and_o be_v inward_o lighten_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o we_o know_v undoubted_o that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v preach_v even_o outward_o god_n can_v indeed_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n or_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o a_o angel_n without_o the_o ministry_n of_o saint_n peter_n have_v teach_v cornelius_n in_o the_o act_n but_o nevertheless_o he_o refer_v he_o to_o peter_n of_o who_o the_o angel_n speak_v say_v he_o shall_v tell_v thou_o what_o thou_o must_v do_v for_o he_o that_o illuminate_v inward_o by_o give_v man_n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o self_n same_o by_o way_n of_o commandment_n say_v unto_o his_o disciple_n go_v you_o into_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n and_o so_o 16._o mark_n 16._o act_n 16._o paul_n preach_v the_o word_n outward_o to_o lydia_n a_o purple_a seller_n among_o the_o philippian_n but_o the_o lord_n inward_o open_v the_o woman_n heart_n and_o the_o same_o paul_n upon_o a_o elegant_a gradation_n fi●ly_o place_v in_o the_o 10._o to_o the_o roman_n at_o last_o infer_v therefore_o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o know_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o god_n can_v illuminate_v who_o and_o when_o he_o will_v even_o without_o the_o external_a ministry_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n appertain_v to_o his_o power_n but_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o usual_a way_n of_o instruct_v man_n deliver_v unto_o we_o of_o god_n both_o by_o commandment_n and_o example_n we_o therefore_o detest_v all_o the_o heresy_n of_o artemon_n the_o manichee_n valentinian_o of_o cerdon_n and_o the_o marcionite_n who_o deny_v that_o the_o scripture_n proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o else_o receive_v not_o or_o polish_a and_o corrupt_v some_o of_o they_o and_o yet_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o certain_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v of_o the_o ancient_a author_n call_v apocryphal_a and_o of_o other_o ecclesiastical_a to_o wit_n such_o as_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n but_o not_o allege_v to_o avouch_v or_o confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o faith_n by_o they_o as_o also_o austin_n in_o his_o 18_o book_n de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la c._n 38._o make_v mention_n that_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o king_n the_o name_n and_o book_n of_o certain_a prophet_n be_v reckon_v but_o he_o add_v that_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o canon_n and_o that_o those_o book_n which_o we_o have_v suffice_v unto_o godliness_n chap._n ii_o of_o interpret_n the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o father_n counsel_n and_o tradition_n the_o apostle_n peter_n have_v say_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v 2._o 2_o pet._n 2._o not_o of_o any_o private_a interpretation_n therefore_o we_o do_v not_o allow_v all_o exposition_n whereupon_o we_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o which_o they_o call_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o true_a and_o natural_a interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o forsooth_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v strive_v to_o force_v all_o man_n simple_o to_o receive_v but_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n for_o authentical_a and_o proper_a which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o that_o be_v from_o the_o phrase_n of_o that_o tongue_n in_o which_o they_o be_v write_v they_o be_v also_o weigh_v according_a to_o the_o circumstance_n and_o expound_v according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o place_n either_o like_a or_o unlike_a or_o of_o more_o and_o plain_o accord_v with_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o charity_n and_o make_v notable_o for_o god_n glory_n and_o man_n salvation_n wherefore_o we_o do_v not_o contemn_v the_o holy_a treatise_n of_o the_o father_n agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n from_o who_o notwithstanding_o we_o do_v modest_o dissent_v as_o they_o be_v deprehend_v to_o set_v down_o thing_n mere_o strange_a or_o altogether_o contrary_a to_o the_o same_o neither_o do_v we_o think_v that_o we_o do_v they_o any_o wrong_n in_o this_o matter_n see_v that_o they_o all_o with_o one_o consent_n will_v not_o have_v their_o writing_n match_v with_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o bid_v we_o allow_v of_o they_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o either_o agree_v with_o they_o or_o disagree_v and_o bid_v we_o take_v those_o thing_n that_o agree_v and_o leave_v those_o that_o disagree_v and_o according_a to_o this_o order_n we_o do_v account_n of_o the_o decree_n or_o canon_n of_o counsel_n wherefore_o we_o suffer_v not_o ourselves_o in_o controversy_n about_o religion_n or_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v press_v with_o the_o bare_a testimony_n of_o father_n or_o decree_n of_o counsel_n much_o less_o with_o receive_v custom_n or_o else_o with_o multitude_n of_o man_n be_v of_o one_o judgement_n or_o with_o prescription_n of_o long_a time_n therefore_o in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n or_o matter_n of_o faith_n we_o can_v admit_v any_o other_o judge_n than_o god_n himself_o pronounce_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n what_o be_v true_a what_o be_v false_a what_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v or_o what_o to_o be_v avoid_v so_o we_o do_v not_o rest_v but_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o spiritual_a man_n draw_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n certain_o jeremie_n and_o other_o prophet_n do_v vehement_o condemn_v the_o assembly_n of_o priest_n gather_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o diligent_o forewarn_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o hear_v the_o father_n or_o tread_v in_o their_o path_n who_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o invention_n swarve_v from_o the_o law_n 18._o ezek._n 20._o 18._o of_o god_n we_o do_v likewise_o reject_v humane_a tradition_n which_o although_o they_o be_v set_v out_o with_o goodly_a title_n as_o though_o they_o be_v divine_a and_o apostolical_a by_o the_o lively_a voice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o apostolical_a man_n by_o mean_a of_o bishop_n succeed_v in_o their_o room_n yet_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o scripture_n disagree_v from_o they_o and_o by_o that_o their_o disagreement_n bewray_v themselves_o in_o no_o wise_a to_o be_v apostolical_a for_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o disagree_v among_o themselves_o in_o doctrine_n so_o the_o apostle_n scholar_n do_v not_o set_v forth_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n nay_o it_o be_v blasphemous_a to_o avouch_v that_o the_o apostle_n by_o lively_a voice_n deliver_v thing_n contrary_a to_o their_o writing_n paul_n affirm_v express_o that_o he_o teach_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o all_o church_n and_o again_o we_o 1._o 1_o cor._n 4._o 2_o cor._n 1._o say_v he_o write_v no_o other_o thing_n unto_o you_o than_o which_o you_o read_v or_o also_o acknowledge_v also_o in_o another_o place_n he_o witness_v that_o he_o and_o his_o disciple_n to_o wit_n apostolical_a man_n walk_v in_o the_o same_o 12._o 2_o cor._n 12._o way_n and_o joint_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n do_v all_o thing_n the_o jew_n also_o in_o time_n past_o have_v their_o tradition_n of_o elder_n but_o these_o tradition_n be_v severe_o confute_v by_o the_o lord_n show_v that_o the_o keep_n of_o they_o hinder_v god_n law_n and_o that_o god_n be_v in_o vain_a worship_v 7._o mat._n 15._o mar._n 7._o with_o such_o out_o of_o the_o former_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o deliver_v scriptura_fw-la artic._n 1._o scriptura_fw-la by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v of_o all_o other_o the_o most_o perfect_a and_o ancient_a philosophy_n do_v alone_o perfect_o contain_v all_o piety_n and_o good_a order_n of_o life_n the_o interpretation_n hereof_o be_v to_o be_v interpretatio_fw-la artic_a 2._o
which_o be_v without_o the_o reach_n of_o our_o capacity_n nay_o rather_o we_o apply_v to_o our_o own_o use_n that_o which_o the_o scripture_n teach_v for_o our_o quietness_n and_o contentation_n sake_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n to_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v subject_a with_o a_o fatherly_a care_n watch_v for_o we_o so_o that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o hair_n of_o our_o head_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n without_o his_o will_n and_o that_o he_o have_v satan_n and_o all_o our_o adversary_n so_o fast_o bind_v that_o unless_o leave_v be_v give_v they_o they_o can_v do_v we_o any_o little_a harm_n out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o belgia_n we_o know_v god_n by_o two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o by_o the_o make_n 2._o artic._n 2._o preserve_a and_o govern_v of_o this_o whole_a world_n for_o that_o to_o our_o eye_n be_v as_o a_o most_o excellent_a book_n in_o which_o all_o creature_n from_o the_o least_o to_o the_o great_a be_v grave_v as_o it_o be_v character_n and_o certain_a letter_n by_o which_o the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o god_n may_v be_v see_v and_o know_v of_o we_o namely_o his_o everlasting_a power_n and_o godhead_n as_o paul_n the_o apostle_n speak_v rom._n 1._o chap._n 10._o which_o knowledge_n suffice_v to_o convince_v and_o make_v all_o man_n without_o excuse_n etc._n etc._n look_v for_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o first_o section_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o second_o section_n of_o god_n artic._n 12._o we_o believe_v that_o the_o father_n by_o his_o word_n that_o be_v by_o the_o son_n make_v heaven_n earth_n and_o all_o other_o creature_n of_o nothing_o when_o he_o see_v it_o fit_a and_o convenient_a and_o give_v to_o every_o one_o his_o being_n form_n and_o divers_a office_n that_o they_o may_v serve_v their_o creator_n and_o that_o he_o do_v now_o cherish_v uphold_v and_o govern_v they_o all_o according_a to_o his_o everlasting_a providence_n and_o infinite_a power_n and_o that_o to_o this_o end_n that_o they_o may_v serve_v man_n and_o man_n may_v serve_v his_o god_n he_o also_o make_v the_o angel_n all_o good_a by_o nature_n that_o they_o may_v be_v his_o minister_n and_o may_v also_o attend_v upon_o the_o elect_a of_o which_o notwithstanding_o some_o fall_v from_o that_o excellent_a nature_n in_o which_o god_n have_v create_v they_o into_o everlasting_a destruction_n but_o some_o by_o the_o singular_a grace_n of_o god_n abode_n in_o the_o first_o state_n of_o they_o but_o the_o devil_n and_o those_o wicked_a spirit_n be_v so_o corrupt_v and_o defile_v that_o they_o be_v swear_v enemy_n to_o good_a and_o all_o goodness_n which_o as_o thief_n out_o of_o a_o watch_n tower_n lie_v in_o wait_n for_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o member_n thereof_o that_o by_o their_o juggle_n and_o deceit_n they_o may_v destroy_v and_o lay_v waste_v all_o thing_n therefore_o be_v through_o their_o own_o malice_n addict_v to_o everlasting_a condemnation_n they_o look_v every_o day_n for_o the_o dreadful_a punishment_n of_o their_o mischief_n we_o therefore_o in_o this_o place_n reject_v the_o error_n of_o the_o saducee_n who_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o spirit_n or_o angel_n as_o also_o the_o error_n of_o the_o manichee_n who_o hold_v that_o the_o devil_n have_v their_o beginning_n of_o themselves_o and_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n evil_a and_o not_o corrupt_v by_o wilful_a disobedience_n we_o believe_v that_o this_o most_o gracious_a and_o mighty_a god_n after_o he_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n leave_v they_o not_o to_o be_v rule_v after_o the_o will_n of_o chance_n or_o fortune_n but_o himself_o do_v so_o continual_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o according_a to_o the_o prescript_n rule_v of_o his_o holy_a will_n that_o nothing_o can_v happen_v in_o this_o world_n without_o his_o decree_n and_o ordinance_n and_o yet_o god_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v either_o the_o author_n or_o guilty_a of_o the_o evil_n that_o happen_v in_o this_o world_n for_o both_o his_o infinite_a and_o incomprehensible_a power_n and_o goodness_n stretch_v so_o far_o that_o even_o then_o he_o decree_v and_o execute_v his_o work_n and_o deed_n just_o and_o holy_o when_o as_o both_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o wicked_a do_v unjust_o and_o whatsoever_o thing_n he_o do_v pass_v the_o reach_n of_o man_n capacity_n we_o will_v not_o curious_o and_o above_o our_o capacity_n inquire_v into_o they_o nay_o rather_o we_o humble_o and_o reverent_o adore_v the_o secret_a yet_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n for_o it_o suffice_v we_o as_o be_v christ_n disciple_n to_o learn_v only_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o himself_o teach_v in_o his_o word_n neither_o do_v we_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o pass_v these_o bound_n and_o this_o doctrine_n afford_v we_o exceed_o great_a comfort_n for_o by_o it_o we_o know_v that_o nothing_o befall_v we_o by_o chance_n but_o all_o by_o the_o will_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n who_o watch_v over_o we_o with_o a_o fatherly_a care_n indeed_o have_v all_o thing_n in_o subjection_n to_o himself_o so_o that_o not_o a_o hair_n of_o our_o head_n which_o be_v every_o one_o number_v can_v be_v pluck_v away_o nor_o the_o least_o sparrow_n light_a on_o the_o ground_n without_o the_o will_n of_o our_o father_n in_o these_o thing_n therefore_o do_v we_o whole_o rest_v acknowledge_v that_o god_n hold_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o our_o enemy_n so_o bridle_v as_o it_o be_v with_o snaffle_n that_o without_o his_o will_n and_o good_a leave_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o hurt_v any_o of_o we_o and_o in_o this_o place_n we_o reject_v the_o detestable_a opinion_n of_o the_o epicure_n who_o feign_v god_n to_o be_v idle_a to_o do_v nothing_o and_o to_o commit_v all_o thing_n to_o chance_n the_o four_o section_n of_o man_n fall_n sin_n and_o freewill_n the_o latter_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n of_o man_n fall_n fin_n and_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n chap._n 8._o man_z be_v from_o the_o beginning_n create_v of_o god_n after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n good_a and_o upright_o but_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o his_o own_o fault_n fall_v from_o goodness_n and_o uprightness_n become_v subject_a to_o sin_n death_n and_o divers_a calamity_n and_o such_o a_o one_o as_o he_o become_v by_o his_o fall_n such_o be_v all_o his_o offspring_n even_o subject_a to_o sin_n death_n and_o sundry_a calamity_n and_o we_o take_v sin_n to_o be_v that_o natural_a corruption_n of_o man_n derive_v or_o spread_v from_o those_o our_o first_o parent_n unto_o we_o all_o through_o which_o we_o be_v drown_v in_o evil_a concupiscence_n and_o clean_o turn_v away_o from_o god_n but_o prone_a to_o all_o evil_a full_a of_o all_o wickedness_n distrust_n contempt_n and_o hatred_n of_o god_n can_v do_v no_o good_a of_o ourselves_o no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o think_v of_o any_o and_o that_o more_o be_v even_o as_o 12._o matth._n 12._o we_o do_v grow_v in_o year_n so_o by_o wicked_a thought_n word_n and_o deed_n commit_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n we_o bring_v forth_o corrupt_a fruit_n worthy_a of_o a_o evil_a tree_n in_o which_o respect_n we_o through_o our_o own_o desert_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o just_a punishment_n so_o that_o we_o have_v all_o be_v cast_v away_o from_o god_n have_v not_o christ_n the_o deliverer_n bring_v we_o back_o again_o by_o death_n therefore_o we_o understand_v not_o only_o bodily_a death_n which_o be_v once_o to_o be_v suffer_v of_o all_o we_o for_o sin_n but_o also_o everlasting_a punishment_n due_a to_o our_o corruption_n and_o to_o our_o sin_n for_o the_o apostle_n 2._o eph._n 2._o say_v we_o be_v dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n and_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n as_o well_o as_o other_o but_o god_n which_o be_v rich_a in_o mercy_n even_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a by_o sin_n quicken_v we_o together_o in_o christ_n again_o as_o by_o one_o man_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n and_o by_o sin_n death_n and_o 5._o rom._n 5._o so_o death_n go_v over_o all_o man_n for_o as_o much_o as_o all_o man_n have_v sin_v etc._n etc._n we_o therefore_o acknowledge_v that_o original_a sin_n be_v in_o all_o man_n we_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o other_o sin_n which_o spring_n here_o out_o be_v both_o call_v and_o be_v in_o deed_n sin_n by_o what_o name_n soever_o they_o be_v term_v whether_o mortal_a or_o venial_a or_o also_o that_o which_o be_v call_v sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v never_o forgive_v we_o also_o confess_v that_o sin_n be_v not_o equal_a although_o they_o spring_v from_o the_o same_o fountain_n 11._o mar._n 3._o 1_o joh._n 5._o matth._n 10._o 11._o of_o corruption_n and_o unbelief_n but_o that_o some_o be_v more_o grievous_a than_o other_o even_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v
say_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o sodom_n then_o for_o the_o city_n that_o despise_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o therefore_o condemn_v all_o those_o that_o have_v teach_v thing_n contrary_a to_o these_o but_o especial_o pelagius_n and_o all_o the_o pelagian_o together_o with_o the_o jovinianist_n who_o with_o the_o stoic_n count_v all_o sin_n equal_a we_o in_o this_o matter_n agree_v full_o with_o s._n augustine_n who_o produce_v and_o maintain_v his_o say_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n moreover_o we_o condemn_v florinus_n and_o blastus_n against_o who_o also_o iraeneus_n write_v and_o all_o those_o that_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n see_v it_o be_v express_o write_v thou_o be_v not_o a_o god_n that_o love_v wickedness_n 4._o psal_n 84._o 4._o thou_o hate_v all_o they_o that_o work_n iniquity_n and_o will_v destroy_v all_o that_o speak_v lie_n and_o again_o when_o the_o devil_n speak_v a_o lie_n he_o speak_v of_o his_o own_o because_o he_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o father_n of_o lie_v yea_o there_o be_v 44._o john_n 8._o 44._o even_o in_o ourselves_o sin_n and_o corruption_n enough_o so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o god_n shall_v infuse_v into_o we_o either_o a_o new_a or_o great_a measure_n of_o wickedness_n therefore_o when_o god_n be_v say_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o harden_v to_o blind_a and_o to_o deliver_v we_o up_o into_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o god_n do_v it_o by_o just_a judgement_n as_o a_o just_a judge_n and_o revenger_n to_o conclude_v as_o often_o as_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v say_v and_o seem_v to_o do_v some_o evil_n it_o be_v not_o thereby_o mean_v that_o man_n do_v not_o commit_v evil_a but_o that_o god_n do_v suffer_v it_o to_o be_v do_v and_o do_v not_o hinder_v it_o and_o that_o by_o his_o just_a judgement_n who_o can_v hinder_v it_o if_o he_o will_v or_o because_o he_o make_v good_a use_n of_o the_o evil_a of_o man_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o sin_n of_o josephs_n brethren_n or_o because_o himself_o rule_v sin_n that_o they_o break_v not_o out_o and_o rage_n more_o violent_o than_o be_v meet_v saint_n augustine_n in_o his_o enchiridion_n say_v after_o a_o wonderful_a and_o unspeakable_a manner_n that_o be_v not_o do_v beside_o his_o will_n which_o be_v do_v contrary_a to_o his_o will_n because_o it_o can_v not_o be_v do_v if_o he_o shall_v not_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v do_v and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v do_v unwilling_o but_o willing_o neither_o will_v he_o be_v god_n suffer_v any_o evil_a to_o be_v do_v unless_o be_v also_o almighty_a he_o can_v make_v good_a of_o evil_n thus_o far_o augustine_n other_o question_n as_o whether_o god_n will_v have_v adam_n fall_v or_o whether_o he_o force_v he_o to_o fall_v or_o why_o he_o do_v not_o hinder_v his_o fall_n and_o such_o like_a we_o account_v among_o curious_a question_n unless_o perchance_o the_o frowardness_n of_o heretic_n or_o of_o man_n otherwise_o importunate_a do_v compel_v we_o to_o open_v these_o point_n also_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o godly_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v often_o time_n do_v know_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v forbid_v that_o man_n shall_v not_o eat_v of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n and_o punish_v his_o transgression_n and_o also_o that_o the_o thing_n do_v be_v not_o evil_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o providence_n will_n and_o power_n of_o god_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o satan_n and_o our_o will_n resist_v the_o will_n of_o god_n of_o freewill_n and_o so_o of_o man_n power_n and_o ability_n chap._n 9_o we_o teach_v in_o this_o matter_n which_o at_o all_o time_n have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o many_o conflict_n in_o the_o church_n that_o there_o be_v a_o triple_a condition_n or_o estate_n of_o man_n to_o be_v consider_v first_o what_o man_n be_v before_o his_o fall_n to_o wit_n upright_o and_o free_a who_o may_v both_o continue_v in_o goodness_n and_o decline_v to_o evil_n but_o he_o decline_v to_o evil_a and_o have_v wrap_v both_o himself_o and_o all_o mankind_n in_o sin_n and_o death_n as_o have_v be_v show_v before_o second_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v what_o man_n be_v after_o his_o fall_n his_o understanding_n indeed_o be_v not_o take_v from_o he_o neither_o be_v he_o deprive_v of_o will_n and_o altogether_o change_v into_o a_o stone_n or_o stock_n nevertheless_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o alter_v in_o man_n that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v that_o now_o which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v before_o his_o fall_n for_o his_o understanding_n be_v darken_v and_o his_o will_n which_o before_o be_v free_a be_v now_o become_v a_o servile_a will_n for_o it_o serve_v sin_n not_o nill_v but_o willing_a for_o it_o be_v call_v a_o will_n and_o not_o a_o nilling_a therefore_o as_o touch_v evil_a or_o sin_n man_n do_v evil_a not_o compel_v either_o by_o god_n or_o the_o devil_n but_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n he_o have_v a_o most_o free_a will_n but_o whereas_o we_o see_v that_o often_o time_n the_o most_o evil_a deed_n and_o counsel_n of_o man_n be_v hinder_v by_o god_n that_o they_o can_v attain_v to_o their_o end_n this_o do_v not_o take_v from_o man_n liberty_n in_o evil_a but_o god_n by_o his_o power_n do_v prevent_v that_o which_o man_n otherwise_o purpose_v free_o as_o josephs_n brethren_n do_v free_o purpose_n to_o slay_v joseph_n but_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v it_o because_o it_o seem_v otherwise_o good_a to_o god_n in_o his_o secret_a counsel_n but_o as_o touch_v goodness_n and_o virtue_n man_n understanding_n do_v not_o of_o itself_o judge_v aright_o of_o heavenly_a thing_n for_o the_o evangelicall_n and_o apostolic_a scripture_n require_v regeneration_n of_o every_o one_o of_o we_o that_o will_v be_v save_v wherefore_o our_o first_o birth_n by_o adam_n do_v nothing_o profit_v we_o to_o salvation_n paul_n say_v the_o natural_a 3._o 1_o cor._n 2._o 2_o cor._n 3._o man_n perceive_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o paul_n else_o where_o deni_v that_o we_o be_v fit_a of_o ourselves_o to_o think_v any_o good_a now_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o mind_n or_o understanding_n be_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o will_v and_o see_v the_o guide_n be_v blind_a it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v see_v how_o far_o the_o will_n can_v reach_v therefore_o man_n not_o as_o yet_o regenerate_v have_v no_o free_a will_n to_o good_a no_o strength_n to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o gospel_n very_o very_o i_o say_v 8._o john_n 8._o unto_o you_o that_o every_o one_o that_o commit_v sin_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n and_o paul_n the_o apostle_n say_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v enmity_n against_o 8._o rom._n 8._o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n neither_o indeed_o can_v be_v furthermore_o there_o be_v some_o understanding_n of_o earthly_a thing_n remain_v in_o man_n after_o his_o fall_n for_o god_n have_v of_o mercy_n leave_v he_o wit_n though_o much_o differ_v from_o that_o which_o be_v in_o he_o before_o his_o fall_n god_n command_v we_o to_o garnish_v our_o wit_n and_o therewithal_o he_o give_v gift_n and_o also_o the_o increase_n thereof_o and_o it_o be_v a_o clear_a case_n that_o we_o can_v profit_v very_o little_a in_o all_o art_n without_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n the_o scripture_n doubtless_o refer_v all_o art_n to_o god_n yea_o and_o the_o ethnic_n also_o do_v ascribe_v the_o beginning_n of_o art_n to_o the_o god_n as_o to_o the_o author_n thereof_o last_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v whether_o the_o regenerate_a have_v freewill_n and_o how_o far_o forth_o they_o have_v it_o in_o regeneration_n the_o understanding_n be_v illuminate_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o it_o may_v understand_v both_o the_o mystery_n and_o will_n of_o god_n and_o the_o will_n itself_o be_v not_o only_o change_v by_o the_o spirit_n but_o be_v also_o endue_v with_o faculty_n that_o of_o it_o own_o accord_n it_o may_v both_o will_n and_o do_v good_a unless_o we_o grant_v this_o we_o shall_v deny_v christian_a liberty_n and_o bring_v in_o the_o bondage_n of_o the_o law_n beside_o the_o prophet_n bring_v in_o god_n speak_v thus_o i_o will_v 31._o jere._n 3_o ezech._n 31._o put_v my_o law_n in_o their_o mind_n and_o write_v they_o in_o their_o heart_n the_o lord_n also_o say_v in_o the_o gospel_n if_o the_o son_n make_v you_o free_a then_o be_v you_o free_a indeed_o paul_n also_o to_o the_o philippian_n unto_o you_o it_o be_v give_v for_o 7._o john_n 7._o christ_n not_o only_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o also_o to_o suffer_v for_o his_o
the_o church_n like_o dote_a folly_n to_o those_o of_o the_o pelagian_o and_o we_o say_v that_o all_o man_n since_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n which_o be_v bear_v by_o the_o couple_v together_o of_o male_a and_o female_a do_v together_o with_o their_o birth_n bring_v with_o they_o original_a sin_n as_o paul_n say_v rom._n 5._o by_o one_o man_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n and_o by_o sin_n death_n and_o ephes_n 2._o we_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n as_o well_o as_o other_o neither_o do_v we_o dislike_v that_o usual_a definition_n if_o it_o be_v well_o understand_v original_a sin_n be_v a_o want_n of_o original_a justice_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o we_o because_o that_o original_a justice_n be_v not_o only_o a_o acceptation_n of_o mankind_n before_o god_n but_o in_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o man_n a_o light_n in_o the_o mind_n whereby_o he_o may_v assure_o believe_v the_o word_n god_n and_o a_o conversion_n of_o the_o will_n unto_o god_n and_o a_o obedience_n of_o the_o heart_n agree_v with_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o which_o be_v graff_v in_o the_o mind_n and_o as_o we_o say_v before_o man_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n that_o original_a justice_n do_v comprehend_v all_o these_o thing_n it_o may_v beunderstood_v by_o this_o say_n man_n be_v create_v after_o the_o image_n and_o likeness_n of_o god_n which_o paul_n do_v thus_o interpret_v ephes_n 4._o put_v you_o on_o the_o new_a man_n which_o after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n where_o undoubted_o by_o true_a holiness_n he_o understand_v all_o those_o virtue_n which_o shine_v in_o our_o nature_n and_o be_v give_v by_o god_n not_o ascit_v by_o art_n or_o get_v by_o instruction_n as_o now_o those_o shadow_n of_o virtue_n such_o as_o they_o be_v in_o man_n be_v ascit_v because_o that_o then_o god_n dwell_v in_o man_n do_v govern_v he_o and_o when_o we_o consider_v what_o original_a justice_n do_v signify_v than_o the_o privation_n opposite_a thereunto_o be_v less_o obscure_a therefore_o original_a sin_n be_v both_o for_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n and_o for_o the_o corruption_n which_o follow_v that_o fall_n even_o in_o our_o birth_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o eternal_a damnation_n except_o we_o obtain_v remission_n for_o the_o mediator_n sake_n and_o this_o corruption_n be_v to_o want_v now_o the_o light_n or_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n which_o shall_v have_v shine_v in_o we_o and_o it_o be_v a_o estrang_n of_o our_o will_n from_o god_n and_o the_o stubbornness_n of_o the_o heart_n resist_v the_o law_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o paul_n speak_v and_o that_o man_n be_v not_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n but_o a_o miserable_a mass_n without_o god_n and_o without_o justice_n these_o want_n and_o this_o whole_a corruption_n we_o say_v to_o be_v sin_n not_o only_o a_o punishment_n of_o sin_n and_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a as_o many_o of_o the_o sententiaries_n do_v say_v that_o these_o evil_n be_v only_o a_o punishment_n and_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a but_o not_o sin_n and_o they_o do_v extenuate_v this_o original_a evil_n and_o then_o they_o feign_v that_o man_n may_v satisfy_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o by_o their_o own_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n become_v just_a the_o church_n must_v avoid_v ambiguity_n therefore_o we_o do_v express_o name_v these_o evil_n corruption_n which_o be_v often_o name_v of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n evil_a concupiscence_n but_o we_o distinguish_v those_o desire_n which_o be_v create_v in_o our_o nature_n from_o that_o confusion_n of_o order_n which_o happen_v after_o our_o fall_n as_o it_o be_v say_v jer._n 10_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v wicked_a and_o paul_n say_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v omnit_fw-la be_v against_o god_n this_o evil_a concupiscence_n we_o say_v to_o be_v sin_n and_o we_o affirm_v that_o this_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o sin_n as_o it_o be_v propound_v and_o teach_v in_o our_o church_n be_v the_o perpetual_a consent_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n of_o free_a will._n artic._n 4._o now_o let_v we_o make_v manifest_a also_o the_o doctrine_n of_o free_a will_n man_n true_o instruct_v in_o the_o church_n have_v always_o distinguish_v between_o discipline_n and_o the_o newness_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o life_n eternal_a and_o they_o have_v teach_v that_o in_o man_n there_o be_v such_o freedom_n of_o will_n to_o govern_v the_o outward_a motion_n of_o the_o member_n that_o thereby_o even_o the_o unregenerate_a may_v after_o a_o sort_n perform_v that_o outward_a discipline_n which_o be_v a_o external_a obedience_n according_a to_o the_o law_n but_o man_n by_o his_o natural_a strength_n be_v not_o able_a to_o free_v himself_o from_o sin_n and_o eternal_a death_n but_o this_o freedom_n and_o conversion_n of_o man_n unto_o god_n and_o this_o spiritual_a newness_n wrought_v by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n quicken_a we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n as_o it_o be_v say_v if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o be_v not_o he_o and_o the_o will_n have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o idle_a and_o we_o give_v god_n thanks_n for_o this_o unspeakable_a benefit_n that_o for_o the_o son_n his_o sake_n and_o through_o he_o he_o give_v we_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o do_v govern_v be_v by_o his_o spirit_n and_o we_o condemn_v the_o pelagian_o and_o the_o manichce_n as_o we_o have_v at_o large_a declare_v in_o a_o other_o place_n of_o the_o difference_n of_o sin_n artic._n 10._o see_v it_o be_v say_v that_o sin_n remain_v in_o the_o regenerate_a it_o be_v necessary_a to_o have_v a_o difference_n of_o sin_n deliver_v unto_o we_o for_o out_o of_o that_o say_n luk._n 11._o he_o go_v and_o take_v unto_o he_o seven_o other_o spirit_n worse_o than_o himself_o and_o they_o enter_v in_o and_o dwell_v there_o etc._n etc._n and_o of_o such_o like_a say_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o some_o who_o be_v regenerate_v do_v grieve_v and_o confession_n and_o look_v the_o 1._o observer_n upon_o this_o confession_n shake_v off_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v again_o reject_v of_o god_n and_o make_v subject_a to_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o eternal_a punishment_n and_o ezech._n 18._o it_o be_v write_v when_o the_o righteous_a man_n shall_v turn_v from_o his_o righteousness_n and_o commit_v iniquity_n he_o shall_v die_v therein_o and_o when_o the_o wicked_a man_n shall_v turn_v from_o his_o wickedness_n and_o do_v judgement_n and_o justice_n he_o shall_v live_v therein_o therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o those_o sin_n which_o remain_v in_o holy_a man_n in_o this_o mortal_a life_n and_o yet_o do_v not_o shake_v off_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o sin_n for_o the_o which_o man_n be_v again_o make_v subject_n to_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o to_o eternal_a punishment_n so_o paul_n rom._n 5._o distinguish_v between_o sin_n that_o reign_v and_o sin_n that_o reign_v not_o and_o rom._n 8._o he_o say_v if_o you_o live_v after_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v die_v but_o if_o you_o mortify_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o body_n by_o the_o spirit_n you_o shall_v live_v and_o in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n chap._n 1._o he_o give_v a_o rule_n fight_v a_o good_a fight_n keep_v faith_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n therefore_o when_o a_o man_n do_v not_o keep_v the_o faith_n but_o either_o witting_o or_o by_o some_o error_n lose_v some_o part_n of_o the_o foundation_n that_o be_v some_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o allow_v idol_n as_o many_o do_v which_o be_v deceive_v with_o false_a opinion_n or_o do_v not_o uphold_v themselves_o by_o the_o comfort_n of_o faith_n but_o be_v overcome_v by_o doubt_v or_o by_o despair_n or_o against_o their_o conscience_n do_v break_v any_o commandment_n of_o god_n he_o do_v shake_v off_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v make_v again_o subject_a to_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o to_o everlasting_a punishment_n of_o these_o man_n faith_n paul_n rom._n 8._o if_o you_o live_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n you_o shall_v die_v and_o 1_o cor._n 6._o neither_o fornicatour_n nor_o adulterer_n nor_o idolater_n etc._n etc._n shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o oath_n ezech._n 18_o do_v clear_o say_v as_o i_o live_v say_v the_o lord_n i_o do_v not_o desire_v the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o be_v convert_v and_o live_v in_o this_o oath_n two_o part_n be_v join_v together_o conversion_n and_o life_n god_n do_v desire_v and_o that_o with_o a_o oath_n the_o conversion_n of_o man_n therefore_o they_o do_v not_o please_v he_o which_o retain_v a_o purpose_n to_o sin_n now_o in_o
and_o life_n everlasting_a through_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n now_o the_o father_n have_v not_o only_o outward_a or_o earthly_a but_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a promise_n in_o christ_n for_o the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v that_o the_o prophet_n which_o prophesy_v of_o the_o grace_n that_o shall_v come_v to_o we_o have_v search_v and_o inquire_v of_o this_o salvation_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n paul_n also_o say_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n be_v promise_v before_o by_o the_o prophet_n of_o god_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n hereby_o than_o it_o appear_v evident_o that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o altogether_o destitute_a of_o all_o the_o gospel_n and_o although_o after_o this_o manner_n our_o father_n have_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n by_o which_o they_o attain_v salvation_n in_o christ_n through_o faith_n yet_o the_o gospel_n be_v proper_o call_v that_o glad_a and_o happy_a tiding_n wherein_o first_o by_o john_n baptist_n then_o by_o christ_n the_o lord_n himself_o and_o afterward_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n be_v preach_v to_o we_o in_o the_o world_n that_o god_n have_v now_o perform_v that_o which_o he_o promise_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o have_v send_v yea_o and_o give_v unto_o we_o his_o only_a son_n and_o in_o he_o reconciliation_n with_o the_o father_n remission_n of_o sin_n all_o fullness_n and_o everlasting_a life_n the_o history_n therefore_o set_v down_o by_o the_o four_o evangelist_n declare_v how_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v or_o fulfil_v of_o christ_n and_o what_o he_o teach_v and_o do_v and_o that_o they_o which_o believe_v in_o he_o have_v all_o fullness_n this_o i_o say_v be_v true_o call_v the_o gospel_n the_o preach_v also_o and_o scripture_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o which_o they_o expound_v unto_o we_o how_o the_o son_n be_v give_v we_o of_o the_o father_n and_o in_o he_o all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o life_n and_o salvation_n be_v true_o call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o as_o even_o at_o this_o day_n it_o lose_v not_o that_o worthy_a name_n if_o it_o be_v sincere_a the_o same_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v by_o the_o apostle_n term_v the_o spirit_n and_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o spirit_n because_o it_o be_v live_v and_o 3._o 2_o cor._n 3._o work_v through_o faith_n in_o the_o ear_n yea_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a through_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o the_o letter_n which_o be_v oppose_v unto_o the_o spirit_n do_v indeed_o signify_v every_o outward_a thing_n but_o more_o special_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n which_o without_o the_o spirit_n and_o faith_n work_v wrath_n and_o stir_v up_o sin_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o they_o that_o do_v not_o true_o believe_v for_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v call_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o ministry_n of_o death_n for_o hitherto_o pertain_v that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o letter_n kill_v but_o the_o spirit_n give_v life_n the_o false_a apostle_n preach_v the_o gospel_n corrupt_v by_o mingle_v of_o the_o law_n there_o with_o as_o though_o christ_n can_v not_o save_v without_o the_o law_n such_o also_o be_v the_o hebionite_n say_v to_o be_v which_o come_v of_o hebion_n the_o heretic_n and_o the_o nazarite_n which_o before_o time_n be_v call_v mynean_n all_o which_o we_o do_v condemn_v sincere_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o teach_v that_o the_o believer_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o spirit_n only_o and_o not_o by_o the_o law_n but_o of_o this_o matter_n there_o shall_v follow_v a_o more_o large_a discourse_n in_o the_o title_n of_o justification_n and_o although_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n compare_v with_o the_o pharisee_n doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n may_v seem_v when_o it_o be_v first_o preach_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n the_o which_o thing_n also_o jeremy_n prophesy_v of_o the_o new_a testament_n yet_o indeed_o it_o not_o only_o be_v and_o as_o yet_o be_v though_o the_o papist_n call_v it_o new_a in_o regard_n of_o popish_a doctrine_n which_o have_v of_o long_a time_n be_v receive_v a_o ancient_a doctrine_n but_o also_o the_o most_o ancient_a in_o the_o world_n for_o god_n 1._o 2_o tim._n 1._o from_o all_o eternity_n fore-ordained_n to_o save_v the_o world_n by_o christ_n and_o this_o his_o predestination_n and_o eternal_a counsel_n have_v he_o open_v to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o gospel_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o evangelicall_n doctrine_n and_o religion_n be_v the_o most_o ancient_a of_o all_o that_o ever_o be_v be_v or_o ever_o shall_v be_v wherefore_o we_o say_v that_o all_o they_o err_v foul_o and_o speak_v thing_n unworthy_a the_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o god_n who_o term_n the_o evangelicall_n doctrine_n and_o religion_n a_o new_a start_n up_o faith_n scarce_o thirty_o year_n old_a to_o who_o that_o say_n of_o isaiah_n do_v very_o well_o agree_v woe_n unto_o they_o that_o speak_v good_a of_o evil_n and_o evil_a of_o good_a which_o put_v darkness_n for_o light_n and_o light_n for_o darkness_n that_o put_v bitter_a for_o sweet_a and_o sweet_a for_o sour_a out_o of_o the_o former_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n therefore_o in_o the_o whole_a evangelicall_n doctrine_n this_o aught_o first_o and_o chief_o to_o be_v urge_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o the_o only_a mercy_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o by_o christ_n his_o merit_n whereof_o that_o man_n may_v know_v how_o much_o they_o stand_v in_o need_n their_o sin_n must_v be_v very_o clear_o lay_v open_a unto_o they_o by_o the_o law_n and_o by_o christ_n his_o death_n out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o bohemia_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o the_o holy_a gospel_n chap._n 10._o and_o see_v that_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o also_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n be_v lawful_o commit_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o their_o lip_n ought_v to_o preserve_v 3._o 1_o cor._n 4._o 2_o cor._n 3._o knowledge_n that_o the_o law_n may_v be_v seek_v at_o their_o mouth_n therefore_o in_o this_o chapter_n it_o be_v further_o teach_v what_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a gospel_n be_v now_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o 2._o malac._n 2._o of_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o true_a ministry_n of_o grace_n institute_v and_o command_v of_o christ_n our_o lord_n wherein_o the_o full_a and_o perfect_a will_n of_o god_n touch_v eternal_a reconciliation_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o make_v manifest_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v declare_v and_o preach_v unto_o all_o people_n this_o doctrine_n do_v christ_n give_v in_o charge_n unto_o his_o disciple_n in_o the_o word_n of_o this_o sentence_n go_v you_o into_o all_o the_o world_n 16._o mark_n 16._o and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n this_o doctrine_n do_v peter_n profess_v before_o cornelius_n when_o he_o say_v he_o command_v we_o to_o 20._o act_n 20._o preach_v unto_o the_o people_n and_o to_o testify_v that_o this_o be_v he_o that_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a to_o he_o also_o give_v all_o the_o prophet_n witness_n that_o through_o his_o name_n all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n this_o ministry_n be_v more_o honourable_a great_a and_o more_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n then_o be_v the_o sacrament_n the_o which_o be_v prove_v by_o that_o sentence_n of_o the_o most_o excellent_a apostle_n saint_n paul_n for_o christ_n 2._o 1_o cor._n 2._o send_v i_o not_o to_o baptise_v that_o be_v not_o chief_o to_o do_v this_o but_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n for_o only_o through_o the_o pure_a gospel_n and_o the_o preach_v thereof_o be_v say_v sow_v inward_o in_o the_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o from_o thence_o also_o must_v we_o conceive_v and_o seek_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n touch_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o also_o touch_v the_o sacrament_n themselves_o among_o those_o who_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o age_n be_v able_a to_o use_v their_o understanding_n it_o be_v of_o necessity_n that_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n go_v before_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n whereof_o we_o may_v see_v a_o evident_a proof_n in_o those_o three_o thousand_o which_o be_v convert_v by_o peter_n 8._o act_n 2._o act_n 8._o also_o in_o cornelius_n and_o in_o the_o chamberlain_n we_o may_v see_v that_o according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o philip_n the_o question_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v make_v do_v thou_o believe_v with_o all_o thy_o heart_n then_o it_o may_v be_v that_o thou_o who_o have_v true_a faith_n graft_v in_o thy_o heart_n may_v receive_v profit_n by_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o without_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n
command_v in_o the_o law_n which_o they_o call_v the_o work_n of_o supererrogation_n it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n for_o the_o law_n be_v not_o give_v to_o this_o end_n to_o signify_v that_o man_n may_v perfect_o fulfil_v the_o commandment_n thereof_o in_o this_o life_n but_o to_o show_v to_o man_n his_o imperfection_n and_o to_o testify_v of_o the_o unrighteousness_n of_o man_n and_o of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o all_o man_n and_o to_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o seek_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n righteousness_n and_o salvation_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n rom._n 3._o by_o the_o law_n come_v the_o knowledge_n of_o sin_n and_o rom._n 7._o the_o law_n be_v spiritual_a but_o i_o be_o carnal_a sell_v under_o sin_n and_o rom._n 8._o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n neither_o indeed_o can_v be_v and_o gal._n 3._o curse_a be_v every_o man_n that_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o augustine_n say_v this_o 36._o de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la &_o litera_fw-la cap._n 36._o first_o commandment_n of_o justice_n wherein_o we_o be_v command_v to_o love_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n with_o all_o our_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o our_o mind_n whereupon_o follow_v that_o other_o commandment_n of_o love_v our_o neighbour_n we_o shall_v fulfil_v in_o that_o life_n where_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o face_n to_o face_n but_o therefore_o it_o be_v even_o now_o also_o command_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v admonish_v what_o be_v behove_v we_o to_o riquire_v by_o faith_n whither_o to_o send_v our_o hope_n before_o hand_n and_o by_o forget_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v behind_o what_o before_o thing_n we_o shall_v stretch_v ourselves_o unto_o and_o hereby_o so_o far_o as_o i_o can_v judge_v he_o have_v profit_v much_o in_o this_o life_n in_o that_o righteousness_n which_o be_v to_o be_v perfect_v who_o by_o profit_v do_v know_v how_o far_o he_o be_v from_o the_o perfection_n of_o righteousness_n and_o again_o charity_n be_v a_o virtue_n whereby_o that_o be_v love_v which_o be_v to_o be_v belove_v this_o be_v in_o some_o great_a in_o other_o lesser_a and_o in_o some_o none_o at_o 29._o august_n icronim_n epist_n 29._o all_o but_o the_o most_o absolute_a love_n which_o now_o can_v be_v increase_v so_o long_o as_o a_o man_n live_v here_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o man_n for_o so_o long_o as_o it_o may_v be_v increase_v that_o which_o be_v less_o than_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v come_v of_o our_o corruption_n by_o reason_n of_o which_o corruption_n there_o be_v not_o a_o just_a man_n in_o the_o earth_n that_o do_v good_a and_o sin_v not_o by_o reason_n of_o which_o corruption_n no_o flesh_n live_a shall_v be_v justify_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n for_o which_o corruption_n sake_n if_o we_o say_v that_o we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o we_o for_o the_o which_o also_o though_o we_o profit_v never_o so_o much_o yet_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o say_v forgive_v we_o on_o debt_n although_o all_o our_o word_n deed_n and_o thought_n be_v already_o forgive_v we_o in_o baptism_n and_o again_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n 19_o lib._n 1._o retract_v cap._n 19_o be_v count_v as_o do_v when_o as_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o do_v be_v notwithstanding_o pardon_v and_o jerome_n say_v this_o be_v only_a perfection_n unto_o man_n if_o they_o know_v that_o they_o be_v perfect_a this_o be_v the_o true_a wisdom_n of_o man_n to_o know_v that_o he_o be_v imperfect_a and_z that_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v the_o perfection_n of_o all_o just_a man_n in_o the_o flesh_n be_v imperfect_a of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n chap._n 8._o although_o many_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n and_o christ_n himself_o do_v teach_v that_o we_o must_v not_o render_v evil_a for_o evil_n nor_o lock_v upon_o a_o woman_n want_v only_o and_o such_o like_a yet_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o new_a law_n whereby_o as_o the_o father_n in_o time_n past_a be_v save_v under_o the_o old_a testament_n by_o the_o old_a law_n so_o man_n now_o under_o the_o new_a testament_n shall_v be_v save_v by_o a_o new_a law_n for_o except_v a_o man_n take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o law_n general_o for_o doctrine_n as_o the_o prophet_n now_o and_o then_o do_v use_v the_o name_n of_o the_o law_n certain_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o proper_o a_o law_n as_o paul_n do_v common_o use_v the_o name_n of_o the_o law_n but_o it_o be_v a_o good_a and_o joyful_a message_n touch_v the_o sionne_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o only_o be_v the_o purger_n of_o our_o sin_n the_o appeaser_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o our_o redeemer_n and_o saviour_n neither_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n writing_n any_o new_a law_n but_o they_o be_v a_o interpretation_n of_o the_o old_a law_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o also_o be_v to_o be_v see_v before_o and_o that_o not_o obscure_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n but_o they_o be_v repeat_v in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o nature_n be_v declare_v we_o may_v be_v stir_v up_o to_o seek_v and_o embrace_v christ_n reveal_v in_o his_o gospel_n and_o that_o we_o may_v know_v after_o what_o rule_n we_o be_v to_o frame_v our_o life_n through_o faith_n in_o christ_n wherefore_o if_o we_o will_v speak_v proper_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o gospel_n of_o christ_n as_o of_o christ_n we_o be_v not_o to_o make_v a_o new_a lawgiver_n see_v that_o he_o neither_o have_v make_v a_o new_a law_n nor_o institute_v a_o new_a politic_a kingdom_n in_o this_o earth_n so_o must_v we_o not_o make_v a_o new_a law_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o by_o more_o hard_a and_o severe_a commandment_n do_v bring_v eternal_a salvation_n to_o the_o doer_n thereof_o but_o we_o think_v it_o to_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o natural_a or_o moral_a law_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o that_o neither_o the_o man_n which_o live_v under_o the_o old_a testament_n nor_o those_o which_o live_v under_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v obtain_v eternal_a salvation_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o only_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n through_o faith_n christ_n out_o of_o isaiah_n do_v recite_v his_o office_n for_o the_o which_o he_o be_v send_v into_o the_o earth_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o be_v upon_o i_o b●cause_fw-mi 4._o luke_n 4._o he_o have_v anoint_v i_o he_o have_v send_v i_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o poor_a etc._n etc._n here_o christ_n teach_v that_o his_o proper_a office_n be_v not_o to_o make_v a_o new_a law_n which_o shall_v terrify_v and_o kill_v miserable_a sinner_n but_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n which_o may_v comfort_v and_o quicken_v sinner_n gal._n 4._o when_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n be_v come_v god_n send_v his_o son_n make_v of_o a_o woman_n and_o make_v under_o the_o law_n that_o he_o may_v redeem_v they_o which_o be_v under_o the_o law_n and_o that_o we_o by_o adoption_n may_v receive_v the_o right_n of_o son_n and_o act_v 15._o it_o be_v say_v why_o tempt_v you_o god_n to_o lay_v a_o yoke_n on_o the_o disciple_n neck_n which_o neither_o our_o father_n nor_o we_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v but_o we_o believe_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v save_v even_o as_o they_o etc._n etc._n and_o augustine_n say_v that_o people_n which_o receive_v the_o old_a testament_n be_v 3_o contra_fw-la adimantum_fw-la manichaei_n discipulum_fw-la cap._n 3_o hold_v under_o certain_a shadow_n and_o figure_n of_o thing_n before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o lord_n according_a to_o the_o wonderful_a and_o most_o orderly_a division_n of_o time_n yet_o therein_o be_v so_o great_a preach_v and_o foretell_v of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o in_o the_o evangelicall_n and_o apostolic_a discipline_n though_o it_o be_v painful_a and_o divine_a no_o commandment_n or_o promise_n can_v be_v find_v which_o be_v want_v even_o in_o those_o old_a boooke_n
by_o the_o infinite_a goodness_n and_o wisdom_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v appoint_v a_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n i_o know_v that_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v immutable_a so_o that_o every_o one_o may_v determine_v in_o these_o grief_n that_o he_o be_v assure_o receive_v into_o favour_n for_o christ_n his_o sake_n this_o be_v the_o proper_a voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o decree_n be_v bring_v by_o the_o son_n out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o eternal_a father_n and_o be_v seal_v up_o by_o his_o blood_n and_o resurrection_n not_o to_o assent_v to_o this_o will_n and_o decree_n be_v to_o contemn_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o concern_v this_o sin_n john_n say_v cap._n 3._o he_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o son_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o but_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o his_o sin_n be_v forgive_v for_o this_o mediator_n sake_n he_o do_v now_o certain_o receive_v remission_n of_o his_o sin_n for_o christ_n his_o sake_n which_o be_v effectual_a in_o he_o and_o quicken_v and_o sanctifi_v he_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o be_v now_o reconcile_v he_o be_v undoubted_o account_v just_a for_o the_o mediator_n sake_n and_o be_v heir_n of_o eternal_a life_n either_o to_o omit_v or_o to_o corrupt_v or_o to_o dislike_v this_o necessary_a comfort_n touch_v conversion_n be_v as_o much_o as_o manifest_o to_o extinguish_v the_o gospel_n as_o touch_v this_o faith_n absolution_n ought_v both_o to_o admonish_v we_o and_o also_o to_o confirm_v it_o as_o david_n be_v confirm_v when_o he_o hear_v this_o absolution_n 2_o reg._n 12._o the_o lord_n have_v take_v away_o thy_o sin_n so_o know_v thou_o that_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v declare_v remission_n unto_o thou_o also_o the_o which_o remission_n be_v namely_o propound_v to_o thou_o in_o absolution_n do_v not_o thou_o feign_v that_o the_o gospel_n do_v nothing_o at_o all_o pertain_v to_o thou_o but_o know_v that_o it_o be_v therefore_o publish_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n man_n embrace_v the_o gospel_n may_v be_v save_v and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o eternal_a and_o immutable_a commandment_n of_o god_n that_o thou_o shall_v believe_v it_o he_o that_o do_v not_o by_o this_o faith_n embrace_v the_o gospel_n but_o be_v still_o doubt_v he_o do_v in_o vain_a hear_v the_o absolution_n when_o as_o by_o this_o comfort_n the_o heart_n be_v quicken_v and_o be_v now_o make_v the_o dwell_a place_n of_o god_n then_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v now_o begin_v a_o new_a obedience_n as_o be_v say_v before_o but_o to_o return_v to_o wicked_a deed_n be_v to_o shake_v off_o god_n and_o again_o to_o lose_v that_o righteousness_n and_o life_n as_o john_n say_v 1_o joh._n 3._o he_o that_o do_v righteousness_n be_v righteous_a he_o that_o commit_v sin_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n but_o we_o have_v before_o rehearse_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o dectrine_n of_o new_a obedience_n of_o satisfaction_n artic._n 17._o now_o what_o a_o confusion_n there_o be_v in_o their_o doctrine_n of_o satisfaction_n which_o they_o term_n work_v not_o due_a enjoin_v by_o the_o church_n it_o be_v long_o to_o rehearse_v and_o few_o before_o these_o time_n have_v understand_v it_o but_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o this_o whole_a part_n also_o be_v true_o and_o clear_o expound_v in_o our_o church_n it_o be_v a_o custom_n among_o our_o first_o father_n that_o they_o which_o defle_v themselves_o with_o murder_n idol_n or_o filthy_a lust_n shall_v be_v bar_v their_o company_n and_o chief_o from_o their_o sacrifice_n this_o custom_n both_o the_o synagogue_n retain_v and_o other_o nation_n also_o which_o be_v not_o altogether_o savage_a in_o asia_n and_o in_o greece_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o which_o be_v defile_v wander_v up_o and_o down_o be_v brand_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o their_o guiltiness_n as_o orestes_n adrastus_n and_o many_o other_o this_o custom_n in_o the_o beginning_n do_v the_o church_n also_o keep_v those_o that_o be_v defile_v it_o sever_v from_o the_o mutual_a society_n afterward_o it_o do_v not_o sudden_o receive_v those_o again_o that_o do_v repent_v that_o it_o may_v be_v know_v that_o they_o do_v unfeigned_o ask_v pardon_n and_o for_o example_n it_o may_v profit_v other_o but_o for_o certain_a day_n absolution_n be_v defer_v that_o they_o may_v be_v see_v to_o ask_v pardon_n public_o so_o be_v that_o incestuous_a corinthian_a debar_v and_o afterward_o receive_v again_o not_o without_o deliberation_n 1_o cor._n 5._o this_o whole_a custom_n be_v appoint_v observation_n appoint_v look_v the_o 4._o observation_n for_o example_n sake_n and_o be_v political_a nothing_o at_o all_o pertain_v to_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o afterward_o through_o superstition_n it_o so_o increase_v that_o fast_n and_o forbear_v the_o company_n of_o man_n or_o wife_n be_v enjoin_v for_o many_o year_n when_o these_o burden_n have_v increase_v too_o much_o the_o bishop_n do_v release_v they_o again_o and_o this_o release_n of_o such_o rite_n be_v call_v indulgence_n the_o monk_n not_o consider_v the_o history_n of_o these_o thing_n feign_v that_o eternal_a punishment_n may_v be_v recompense_v by_o the_o punishment_n of_o purgatory_n or_o other_o punishment_n of_o this_o life_n and_o they_o add_v that_o satisfaction_n be_v enjoin_v of_o the_o church_n that_o those_o punishment_n may_v be_v mitigate_v and_o that_o satisfaction_n shall_v be_v work_n not_o due_a by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n we_o reject_v these_o monkish_a fable_n which_o even_o they_o themselves_o do_v not_o understand_v and_o we_o retain_v most_o sure_a rule_n to_o wit_n that_o eternal_a punishment_n be_v remit_v together_o with_o the_o fault_n for_o the_o son_n his_o sake_n not_o for_o any_o our_o satisfaction_n according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o hosea_n chap._n 13._o o_o death_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o death_n o_o hell_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o destruction_n also_o rom._n 5._o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n second_o we_o say_v that_o these_o not_o due_a work_n whereof_o these_o man_n speak_v be_v not_o any_o worship_n of_o god_n or_o satisfaction_n but_o that_o they_o do_v pertain_v to_o this_o say_n matth._n 15._o they_o do_v in_o vain_a worship_n i_o with_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n and_o confession_n and_o look_v the_o five_o observat_fw-la upon_o this_o confession_n certain_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n have_v no_o commandment_n to_o enjoin_v such_o punishment_n also_o we_o fear_v that_o this_o apply_v of_o indulgence_n by_o which_o the_o pope_n do_v apply_v the_o merit_n of_o saint_n unto_o other_o be_v but_o counterfeit_n and_o that_o the_o indulgence_n in_o time_n past_a be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o release_n of_o the_o canon_n which_o do_v nothing_o appertain_v to_o those_o satisfaction_n whereof_o the_o monk_n do_v speak_v now_o it_o be_v another_o thing_n to_o speak_v of_o satisfaction_n which_o be_v due_a as_o of_o the_o restore_n of_o theft_n of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v get_v by_o usury_n of_o another_o man_n wife_n or_o his_o good_a name_n this_o restitution_n be_v a_o work_n that_o be_v due_a pertain_v to_o new_a obedience_n as_o paul_n say_v ephes_n 4._o let_v he_o that_o have_v steal_v steal_v no_o more_o he_o that_o withhold_v another_o man_n wise_a have_v neither_o contrition_n faith_n nor_o new_a obedience_n neither_o be_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n touch_v due_a satisfaction_n which_o we_o say_v aught_o to_o be_v make_v to_o be_v mingle_v with_o those_o trifle_a song_n of_o popish_a satisfaction_n also_o this_o we_o confess_v that_o in_o this_o life_n many_o horrible_a punishment_n be_v spread_v over_o the_o church_n over_o empire_n and_o over_o family_n for_o certain_a sin_n of_o many_o man_n yea_o even_o of_o the_o elect_a as_o the_o sedition_n that_o be_v raise_v up_o against_o david_n do_v not_o light_o afflict_v that_o whole_a civil_a regiment_n and_o many_o holy_a family_n therefore_o we_o distinguish_v betwixt_o eternal_a punishment_n and_o the_o punishment_n of_o this_o life_n and_o we_o say_v that_o eternal_a punishment_n be_v remit_v only_o for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n his_o sake_n when_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o quicken_v by_o faith_n and_o albeit_o that_o even_o temporal_a punishment_n observat_fw-la punishment_n lock_v the_o 6._o observat_fw-la be_v chief_o mitigate_v for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n his_o sake_n who_o be_v the_o harbour_n for_o the_o church_n because_o this_o weak_a nature_n can_v sustain_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n as_o daniel_n pray_v chap._n 9_o for_o the_o lord_n sake_n hear_v thou_o we_o and_o have_v a_o eye_n unto_o our_o help_n etc._n etc._n yet_o we_o teach_v this_o also_o that_o even_o for_o the_o very_a conversion_n sake_n our_o punishment_n be_v mitigate_v because_o that_o in_o the_o saint_n the_o legal_a promise_n be_v add_v to_o their_o
come_v by_o 10._o act_n 13._o rom._n 10._o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o will_v man_n to_o pray_v for_o faith_n and_o the_o same_o also_o call_v faith_n powerful_a 5._o tit._n 1._o galat._n 5._o and_o that_o show_v itself_o by_o love_n this_o faith_n do_v pacify_v the_o conscience_n and_o do_v open_a unto_o we_o a_o free_a access_n unto_o god_n that_o with_o confidence_n we_o may_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o may_v obtain_v at_o his_o hand_n whatsoever_o be_v profitable_a and_o necessary_a the_o same_o faith_n do_v keep_v we_o in_o our_o duty_n which_o we_o owe_v to_o god_n and_o to_o our_o neighbour_n and_o do_v fortify_v our_o patience_n in_o adversity_n it_o do_v frame_v and_o make_v a_o true_a confession_n and_o in_o a_o word_n it_o do_v bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o good_a work_n which_o be_v good_a indeed_o do_v proceed_v from_o a_o lively_a faith_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v do_v of_o the_o faithful_a according_a to_o the_o will_n or_o rule_v of_o god_n word_n for_o peter_n the_o apostle_n say_v therefore_o give_v all_o diligence_n thereunto_o join_v moreover_o virtue_n with_o your_o faith_n and_o with_o virtue_n knowledge_n and_o with_o knowledge_n temperance_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v say_v before_o that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n do_v prescribe_v unto_o we_o the_o pattern_n of_o good_a work_n and_o the_o apostle_n say_v this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n even_o your_o sanctisication_n that_o 4._o 1_o thess_n 4._o you_o abstain_v from_o all_o uncleanness_n and_o that_o no_o man_n oppress_v or_o deceive_v his_o brother_n in_o any_o matter_n but_o as_o for_o such_o work_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n as_o be_v take_v up_o upon_o our_o own_o like_n which_o saint_n paul_n call_v wilworship_n they_o be_v not_o allow_v nor_o like_v of_o god_n of_o such_o 2._o coloss_n 2._o the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o gospel_n they_o worship_v i_o in_o vain_a teach_v 15._o matth._n 15._o for_o doctrine_n the_o precept_n of_o man_n we_o therefore_o disallow_v all_o such_o manner_n of_o work_n and_o we_o approve_v and_o urge_v man_n unto_o such_o as_o 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o will_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n yea_o and_o these_o same_o work_n that_o be_v agreeable_a to_o god_n will_v must_v be_v do_v not_o to_o the_o end_n to_o merit_v eternal_a life_n by_o they_o for_o life_n everlasting_a as_o the_o apostle_n faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n nor_o for_o ostentation_n sake_n which_o the_o lord_n do_v reject_v matth._n 6._o nor_o for_o lucre_n which_o also_o he_o mislike_v matth._n 23._o but_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o commend_v and_o set_v forth_o our_o call_n and_o to_o yield_v thankfulness_n unto_o god_n and_o also_o for_o the_o profit_n of_o our_o neighbour_n for_o the_o lord_n say_v again_o in_o the_o gospel_n let_v your_o light_n so_o shine_v before_o man_n that_o they_o may_v see_v your_o 5._o mat._n 5._o good_a work_n and_o glrifie_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n likewise_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v walk_v worthy_a of_o your_o call_n al●o_o whatsoever_o 3._o ephes_n 4._o coloss_n 3._o you_o do_v faith_n he_o either_o in_o word_n or_o indeed_o do_v all_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n give_v thanks_n to_o god_n the_o father_n by_o he_o let_v no_o man_n seek_v his_o own_o but_o every_o man_n his_o brother_n and_o let_v we_o also_o learn_v to_o show_v forth_o good_a work_n for_o necessary_a use_n that_o they_o be_v 3._o phil._n 4._o tit._n 3._o not_o unprofitable_a notwithstanding_o therefore_o that_o we_o teach_v with_o the_o apostle_n that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o not_o by_o any_o good_a work_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o light_o esteem_v or_o condemn_v good_a work_n because_o we_o know_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o create_v or_o regenerate_v through_o faith_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v idle_a but_o rather_o that_o without_o cease_v he_o shall_v do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v good_a and_o profitable_a for_o in_o the_o gospel_n the_o lord_n say_v a_o good_a tree_n bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n and_o again_o whosoever_o abide_v in_o i_o bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n and_o last_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v the_o workmanship_n of_o god_n 2._o matth._n 12._o john_n ●5_n ephes_n 2._o tit._n 2._o create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n to_o good_a work_n which_o god_n have_v prepare_v that_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o and_o again_o who_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o that_o he_o may_v deliver_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n and_o purge_v we_o to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n to_o himself_o zealous_a of_o good_a work_n we_o therefore_o condemn_v all_o those_o which_o do_v contemn_v good_a work_n and_o do_v babble_n that_o they_o be_v needless_a and_o not_o to_o be_v regard_v nevertheless_o as_o be_v say_v before_o we_o do_v not_o think_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o good_a work_n or_o that_o they_o be_v so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o no_o man_n be_v ever_o save_v without_o they_o for_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n and_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n alone_o work_n do_v necessary_o proceed_v from_o faith_n but_o salvation_n be_v improper_o attribute_v to_o they_o which_o be_v most_o proper_o ascribe_v to_o grace_n that_o sentence_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o notable_a if_o by_o grace_n than_o not_o of_o work_n for_o then_o grace_n be_v no_o 11._o rom._n 11._o more_o grace_n but_o if_o of_o work_n then_o be_v it_o not_o of_o grace_n for_o then_o work_n be_v no_o more_o work_n now_o the_o work_n which_o we_o do_v be_v accept_v and_o allow_v of_o god_n through_o faith_n because_o they_o which_o do_v they_o please_v god_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o also_o the_o work_n themselves_o be_v do_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n through_o his_o holy_a spirit_n for_o saint_n peter_n say_v that_o of_o every_o nation_n he_o that_o fear_v god_n and_o work_v righteousness_n be_v 1._o act._n 10._o coloss_n 1._o accept_v with_o he_o and_o paul_n also_o we_o cease_v not_o to_o pray_v for_o you_o that_o you_o may_v walk_v worthy_a of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n please_v he_o be_v fruitful_a in_o every_o good_a work_n here_o therefore_o we_o diligent_o teach_v not_o false_a and_o philosophical_a but_o true_a virtue_n true_a good_a work_n and_o the_o true_a duty_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n and_o this_o we_o do_v with_o all_o diligence_n and_o earnestness_n that_o we_o can_v inculcate_v and_o beat_v into_o man_n mind_n sharp_o reprove_v the_o slothfulness_n and_o hypocrisy_n of_o all_o those_o who_o with_o their_o mouth_n praise_v and_o profess_v the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o with_o their_o shameful_a life_n do_v dishonour_v the_o same_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n in_o this_o case_n god_n horrible_a threaten_n large_a promise_n and_o bountiful_a reward_n and_o that_o by_o exhort_v comfort_v and_o rebuke_v for_o we_o teach_v that_o god_n do_v bestow_v great_a reward_n on_o they_o that_o do_v good_a according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n refrain_v thy_o voice_n from_o weep_v because_o thy_o work_n 10._o isa_n 4._o mar._n 5._o &_o 10._o shall_v have_v a_o reward_n in_o the_o gospel_n also_o the_o lord_n say_v rejoice_v and_o be_v glad_a because_o your_o reward_n be_v great_a in_o the_o heaven_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v give_v to_o one_o of_o these_o little_a one_o a_o cup_n of_o cold_a water_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o shall_v not_o loose_v his_o reward_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o attribute_v this_o reward_n which_o god_n give_v to_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o man_n that_o receive_v it_o but_o to_o the_o goodness_n or_o liberality_n and_o truth_n of_o god_n which_o promise_v and_o give_v it_o who_o although_o he_o owe_v nothing_o unto_o any_o yet_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o give_v a_o reward_n to_o those_o that_o faithful_o worship_v he_o notwithstanding_o that_o he_o do_v also_o give_v they_o grace_n to_o worship_v he_o beside_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n unworthy_a the_o majesty_n of_o god_n and_o many_o unperfect_a thing_n be_v find_v in_o the_o work_v even_o of_o the_o saint_n and_o yet_o because_o god_n do_v receive_v into_o favour_n and_o embrace_v the_o work_n of_o they_o for_o christ_n sake_n therefore_o he_o perform_v unto_o they_o the_o promise_a reward_n for_o otherwise_o our_o righteousness_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o menstruous_a 64._o isa_n 64._o cloth_n yea_o and_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n say_v when_o you_o have_v do_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v command_v you_o say_v we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n 17._o luke_n 17._o that_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v we_o have_v do_v so_o that_o though_o we_o teach_v
another_o place_n he_o that_o believe_v 13._o act_n 13._o in_o he_o be_v make_v righteous_a and_o this_o righteousness_n or_o justification_n be_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n the_o take_v away_o of_o eternal_a punishment_n which_o the_o severe_a justice_n of_o god_n do_v require_v and_o to_o be_v clothe_v with_o christ_n righteousness_n or_o with_o imputation_n thereof_o also_o it_o be_v a_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n a_o receive_n into_o favour_n whereby_o we_o be_v make_v acceptable_a in_o the_o belove_a and_o fellow_n heir_n of_o eternal_a life_n for_o the_o confirm_v of_o which_o thing_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o our_o new_a birth_n or_o regeneration_n there_o be_v a_o earnest_n add_v to_o wit_n the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v give_v and_o bestow_v free_o out_o of_o 1._o ephes_n 1._o that_o infinite_a grace_n for_o christ_n his_o death_n blood_n shed_v and_o his_o resurrection_n all_o these_o thing_n have_v paul_n describe_v very_o excellent_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n where_o he_o bring_v in_o 32._o rom._n 4._o psal_n 32._o david_n speak_v in_o this_o wise_a bless_a be_v they_o who_o iniquity_n be_v forgive_v whereof_o he_o speak_v in_o that_o whole_a chapter_n and_o to_o the_o 8._o gal._n 4._o rom._n 8._o galathian_o he_o say_v god_n send_v forth_o his_o son_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v the_o adoption_n now_o because_o you_o be_v son_n god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n cry_v in_o your_o heart_n abba_n father_n for_o whosoever_o god_n do_v justify_v to_o they_o he_o do_v give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o he_o he_o do_v first_o regenerate_v they_o as_o he_o promise_v by_o the_o prophet_n say_v i_o will_v give_v they_o a_o new_a heart_n and_o i_o will_v put_v my_o spirit_n 5._o ezech_v 11._o and_o 36._o rom_n 5._o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o that_o as_o before_o sin_n have_v reign_v in_o they_o to_o death_n so_o also_o then_o grace_n may_v reign_v by_o righteousness_n unto_o eternal_a life_n through_o jesus_n christ_n and_o this_o be_v the_o communion_n or_o participation_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o father_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o of_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o be_v the_o law_n of_o faith_n the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o life_n write_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o lively_a and_o never_o die_a spring_n of_o this_o justification_n be_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n alone_o by_o those_o his_o save_a work_n that_o be_v which_o give_v salvation_n from_o who_o all_o holy_a man_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n as_o well_o before_o the_o law_n be_v publish_v and_o under_o the_o law_n and_o the_o discipline_n thereof_o as_o also_o after_o the_o law_n have_v and_o do_v draw_v have_v and_o do_v receive_v salvation_n or_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n by_o faith_n in_o the_o most_o comfortable_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o do_v apply_v and_o apprope_a it_o as_o peculiar_a to_o themselves_o only_o for_o the_o sole_a death_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o bloodshedding_n to_o the_o full_a and_o perfect_a abolish_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o the_o cleanse_n from_o they_o all_o whereof_o we_o have_v many_o testimony_n in_o the_o scripture_n holy_a peter_n before_o the_o whole_a country_n at_o jerusalem_n do_v prove_v by_o sound_a argument_n that_o salvation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o then_o in_o 4._o act._n 4._o christ_n jesus_n alone_o and_o that_o under_o this_o large_a cope_n of_o heaven_n there_o be_v no_o other_o name_n give_v unto_o man_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v save_v and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o appeal_v to_o the_o consent_a voice_n and_o testimony_n of_o all_o the_o prophet_n who_o speak_v with_o one_o mind_n and_o by_o one_o spirit_n as_o it_o be_v by_o one_o mouth_n and_o thus_o he_o say_v as_o touch_v this_o jesus_n 10._o act._n 10._o all_o the_o prophet_n bear_v witness_v that_o through_o his_o name_n all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o to_o the_o hebrew_n it_o be_v write_v he_o have_v by_o himself_o purge_v our_o sin_n and_o again_o we_o 2._o heb._n 1_o eph._n 1._o 1_o j●h_o 2._o have_v redemption_n through_o his_o blood_n even_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o st._n john_n say_v we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n or_o atonement_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o but_o also_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o again_o to_o the_o hebrew_n we_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o body_n 10._o heb._n 10._o of_o jesus_n christ_n once_o make_v and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o add_v with_o one_o only_a offering_n have_v he_o consecrate_v for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v namely_o of_o god_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n therefore_o all_o sinner_n and_o such_o as_o be_v penitent_a aught_o to_o fly_v incontinent_o through_o their_o whole_a life_n to_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n alone_o for_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o every_o save_a grace_n according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o 4._o heb._n 4._o hebrew_n see_v that_o we_o have_v a_o great_a high_a priest_n even_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v enter_v into_o heaven_n let_v we_o hold_v fast_o this_o profession_n which_o be_v concern_v christ_n our_o lord_n and_o straightway_o he_o add_v let_v we_o therefore_o go_v bold_o unto_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v mercy_n and_o find_v grace_n to_o help_v in_o time_n of_o need_n also_o christ_n himself_o cry_v out_o say_v he_o that_o thirst_v let_v he_o come_v to_o 7._o joh._n 7._o i_o and_o drink_v and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o that_o come_v unto_o i_o shall_v not_o hunger_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v never_o thirst_v now_o they_o 6._o joh._n 6._o that_o attain_v to_o this_o justification_n by_o christ_n our_o lord_n be_v teach_v to_o take_v unto_o themselves_o true_a and_o assure_a comfort_n out_o of_o this_o grace_n and_o bounty_n of_o god_n to_o enjoy_v a_o good_a and_o quiet_a conscience_n before_o god_n to_o be_v certain_a of_o their_o own_o salvation_n and_o to_o have_v it_o confirm_v to_o they_o by_o this_o mean_n that_o see_v they_o be_v here_o the_o son_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v also_o after_o death_n in_o the_o resurrection_n be_v make_v heir_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o ought_v both_o to_o desire_v to_o be_v bring_v 4._o rom._n 8._o gal._n 4._o to_o this_o that_o they_o may_v receive_v the_o fruit_n of_o perfect_a salvation_n and_o also_o cheerful_o to_o look_v for_o it_o with_o that_o confidence_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o such_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o judgement_n 5._o joh._n 5._o but_o that_o by_o make_v away_o they_o have_v already_o pass_v from_o death_n into_o life_n of_o all_o other_o point_n of_o doctrine_n we_o account_v this_o the_o chief_a and_o weighty_a as_o that_o wherein_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v consist_v christianity_n be_v found_v and_o the_o precious_a and_o most_o noble_a treasure_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o the_o only_a and_o lively_a comfort_n proceed_v from_o god_n be_v comprehend_v therefore_o herein_o our_o preacher_n do_v labour_v especial_o that_o they_o may_v well_o instruct_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n in_o this_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o so_o sow_v it_o that_o it_o may_v take_v deep_a root_n of_o good_n work_n and_o a_o christian_a life_n chap._n 7._o in_o the_o seven_o place_n we_o teach_v that_o they_o who_o be_v make_v righteous_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n by_o faith_n alone_o in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o that_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n without_o any_o merit_n aught_o in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o their_o life_n that_o follow_v both_o altogether_o joint_o and_o every_o one_o particular_o according_a as_o the_o order_n condition_n age_n &_o place_n of_o every_o one_o do_v require_v to_o perform_v and_o exercise_v those_o good_a work_n and_o holy_a action_n which_o be_v command_v of_o god_n even_o as_o god_n command_v when_o he_o say_v teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v command_v you_o now_o these_o good_a work_n or_o holy_a action_n be_v not_o certain_a affection_n devise_v of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n for_o such_o the_o lord_n forbid_v but_o they_o be_v express_o show_v and_o propound_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o do_v the_o which_o god_n do_v bind_v we_o the_o rule_n and_o chief_a square_n whereof_o god_n himself_o be_v in_o his_o word_n for_o so_o he_o say_v by_o the_o prophet_n walk_v not_o in_o the_o 20._o ezech._n 20._o commandment_n of_o your_o father_n and_o keep_v
can_v he_o do_v that_o be_v precious_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n how_o shall_v he_o give_v himself_o to_o prayer_n second_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o we_o may_v profit_v and_o increase_v more_o and_o more_o in_o this_o grace_n and_o that_o we_o may_v gain_v unto_o the_o lord_n by_o occupy_v those_o talent_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o our_o trust_n whereof_o saint_n paul_n say_v now_o we_o 3._o 2_o cor._n 3._o all_o behold_v as_o in_o a_o mirror_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o open_a face_n be_v change_v into_o the_o same_o image_n from_o glory_n to_o glory_n that_o be_v we_o behold_v christ_n who_o be_v the_o image_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n and_o herein_o we_o endeavour_v that_o we_o may_v be_v conform_v to_o the_o likeness_n of_o this_o image_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o do_v kindle_v we_o thereunto_o till_o this_o image_n do_v get_v her_o perfection_n by_o the_o bless_a resurrection_n three_o we_o must_v do_v and_o exercise_v ourselves_o in_o good_a work_n as_o well_o for_o the_o promise_n of_o this_o life_n as_o also_o for_o the_o reward_n of_o eternal_a life_n whereof_o mention_n be_v make_v very_o often_o and_o at_o large_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o that_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o may_v have_v a_o more_o easy_a entrance_n to_o the_o attain_n of_o those_o reward_n and_o to_o the_o eternal_a kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o saint_n peter_n testify_v say_v if_o ●_o 2_o pet._n ●_o you_o do_v these_o thing_n you_o shall_v never_o fall_v for_o by_o this_o mean_v a_o enter_v shall_v be_v minister_v unto_o you_o abundant_o into_o the_o everlasting_a kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n but_o chief_o we_o must_v do_v the_o work_n of_o mercy_n whereby_o we_o may_v benefit_v our_o neighbour_n whereby_o we_o provide_v and_o do_v for_o he_o and_o whereof_o he_o stand_v in_o need_n such_o as_o these_o be_v to_o give_v alm_n to_o visit_v the_o sick_a to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o they_o or_o to_o be_v at_o hand_n to_o do_v they_o service_n to_o teach_v the_o simple_a by_o counsel_n and_o labour_n to_o help_v other_o to_o pardon_v offence_n and_o such_o like_a which_o all_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o bountifulness_n of_o god_n and_o of_o reward_n to_o do_v the_o which_o christ_n our_o lord_n do_v exhort_v in_o these_o word_n be_v you_o merciful_a as_o your_o father_n be_v merciful_a give_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o you_o forgive_v and_o you_o shall_v 6._o luk._n 6._o be_v forgive_v and_o in_o another_o place_n sell_v your_o good_n and_o give_v alm_n 12._o luk_n 12._o get_v you_o bag_n which_o wax_v not_o old_a a_o treasure_n that_o can_v fail_v in_o heaven_n where_o ●o_o thief_n come_v and_o where_o the_o moth_n corrupt_v nothing_o also_o when_o thou_o make_v a_o feast_n call_v the_o poor_a the_o maim_a the_o lame_a the_o blind_a ●nd_v thou_o shall_v be_v bless_v because_o they_o can_v recompense_v 14._o luk._n 14._o thou_o for_o thou_o shall_v be_v recompense_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o just_a also_o i_o be_v a_o hunger_a i_o thirst_v i_o be_v a_o stranger_n naked_a sick_a and_o in_o prison_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n you_o help_v i_o by_o your_o service_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o in_o as_o much_o as_o you_o do_v these_o thing_n to_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o my_o brethren_n you_o do_v they_o to_o i_o come_v hither_o you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n inherit_v the_o king_n doom_n prepare_v for_o you_o before_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n by_o these_o it_o be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a that_o those_o work_n which_o proceed_v of_o faith_n do_v please_v god_n and_o be_v reward_v with_o abundant_a grace_n to_o wit_n with_o the_o recompense_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o good_a thing_n and_o blessing_n both_o in_o this_o life_n and_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v last_o this_o doctrine_n be_v shut_v up_o with_o this_o or_o such_o like_a exhortation_n that_o no_o man_n can_v perfect_o do_v these_o work_n of_o christian_a godliness_n or_o full_o perform_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v find_v who_o do_v not_o fail_v in_o any_o part_n hereof_o and_o who_o be_v clean_o without_o sin_n as_o it_o be_v write_v there_o be_v not_o a_o man_n 7._o eccles_n 7._o so_o just_a on_o the_o earth_n who_o do_v upright_o and_o not_o sin_n and_o that_o therefore_o every_o one_o ought_v to_o seek_v and_o to_o enjoy_v his_o perfection_n in_o christ_n jesus_n in_o his_o grace_n precious_a sacrifice_n and_o merit_n by_o that_o faith_n and_o his_o justification_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n if_o he_o will_v not_o have_v any_o thing_n in_o himself_o that_o may_v deserve_v damnation_n for_o christ_n alone_o be_v our_o perfection_n and_o fulfil_v of_o the_o law_n our_o life_n and_o righteousness_n and_o whosoever_o receive_v he_o by_o faith_n and_o do_v whole_o trust_v in_o he_o these_o man_n have_v all_o their_o sin_n wash_v away_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o afterward_o they_o need_v not_o to_o fear_v condemnation_n for_o thus_o paul_n write_v therefore_o now_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n which_o do_v not_o 8._o rom._n 8._o walk_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n but_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n for_o to_o these_o man_n christ_n be_v make_v of_o godwisdome_n righteousness_n sanctification_n 1._o 1_o cor._n 1._o and_o redemption_n out_o of_o the_o french_a confession_n we_o believe_v that_o our_o whole_a righteousness_n do_v consist_v in_o 13._o artic._n 13._o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n which_o be_v also_o as_o david_n do_v testify_v our_o only_a felicity_n therefore_o we_o do_v utter_o reject_v all_o other_o mean_n whereby_o man_n do_v think_v that_o they_o may_v be_v justify_v before_o god_n and_o cast_v away_o all_o opinion_n of_o virtue_n and_o merit_n we_o do_v altogether_o rest_v in_o the_o only_a obedience_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v impute_v to_o we_o both_o that_o all_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v cover_v and_o also_o that_o we_o may_v obtain_v grace_n before_o god_n to_o conclude_v we_o believe_v that_o we_o can_v find_v where_o to_o rest_v ourselves_o if_o we_o decline_v never_o so_o little_a from_o this_o foundation_n but_o rather_o we_o shall_v be_v always_o unquiet_a because_o we_o be_v not_o at_o peace_n with_o god_n till_o we_o be_v certain_o persuade_v that_o we_o be_v love_v in_o jesus_n christ_n because_o that_o in_o ourselves_o we_o be_v worthy_a of_o all_o hatred_n we_o believe_v that_o by_o faith_n alone_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o this_o 10._o artic._n 10._o righteousness_n as_o it_o be_v write_v he_o suffer_v to_o purchase_v salvation_n for_o we_o that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v and_o this_o be_v therefore_o do_v because_o the_o promise_n of_o life_n offer_v to_o we_o in_o he_o be_v then_o apply_v to_o our_o use_n and_o make_v effectual_a to_o we_o when_o we_o do_v embrace_v they_o nothing_o doubt_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v those_o thing_n whereof_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o own_o mouth_n have_v assure_v we_o therefore_o that_o righteousness_n which_o we_o obtain_v by_o faith_n do_v depend_v upon_o free_a promise_n whereby_o the_o lord_n do_v declare_v and_o testify_v that_o we_o be_v belove_v of_o he_o we_o believe_v that_o by_o the_o secret_a grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o 21._o artic._n 21._o be_v endue_v with_o the_o light_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o be_v proper_a to_o they_o alone_o to_o who_o it_o please_v god_n to_o give_v it_o so_o that_o the_o faithful_a have_v not_o whereof_o to_o boast_v in_o themselves_o see_v that_o rather_o they_o be_v more_o than_o double_a debtor_n because_o they_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o and_o further_o we_o believe_v that_o faith_n be_v give_v to_o the_o elect_n not_o that_o they_o may_v once_o only_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o right_a way_n but_o rather_o that_o they_o may_v go_v forward_o therein_o unto_o the_o end_n because_o that_o as_o the_o beginning_n be_v of_o god_n so_o be_v also_o the_o accomplishment_n we_o believe_v that_o we_o who_o by_o nature_n be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n 22._o artic._n 22._o be_v regenerate_v unto_o a_o new_a life_n by_o mean_n of_o this_o same_o faith_n and_o by_o this_o faith_n we_o receive_v grace_n to_o live_v holy_o while_o we_o do_v embrace_v that_o evangelicall_n promise_n that_o the_o lord_n will_v give_v unto_o we_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o it_o be_v so_o far_o that_o faith_n shall_v extinguish_v the_o desire_n to_o live_v well_o and_o holy_o that_o it_o do_v rather_o increase_v and_o kindle_v it_o in_o we_o whereupon_o good_a work_n do_v necessary_o
believe_v god_n and_o it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n here_o certain_o augustine_n by_o faith_n do_v understand_v confidence_n which_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o genesis_n and_o in_o paul_n he_o do_v altogether_o understand_v it_o as_o we_o expound_v it_o and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la &_o litera_fw-la he_o say_v by_o the_o law_n we_o fear_v god_n and_o by_o faith_n we_o fly_v to_o his_o mercy_n bernard_n in_o his_o sermon_n de_fw-fr annunciatione_fw-la say_v first_o of_o all_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o believe_v that_o thou_o can_v not_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n but_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n but_o add_v thereunto_o that_o thou_o may_v also_o believe_v this_o that_o through_o he_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o this_o be_v the_o witness_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v give_v in_o our_o heart_n say_v thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o for_o so_o do_v the_o apostle_n think_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v free_o by_o faith_n in_o this_o sentence_n the_o judgement_n of_o our_o church_n be_v plain_o and_o proper_o allege_v and_o like_a testimony_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o this_o author_n basil_n also_o in_o his_o sermon_n of_o humility_n do_v most_o proper_o set_v forth_o our_o judgement_n in_o these_o word_n he_o that_o rejoice_v let_v he_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v make_v unto_o we_o of_o god_n wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n and_o sanctification_n and_o redemption_n as_o it_o be_v write_v he_o that_o rejoice_v let_v he_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o this_o be_v perfect_a and_o sound_a rejoice_v in_o god_n when_o as_o a_o man_n be_v not_o puff_v up_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n but_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o do_v stand_v in_o need_n of_o the_o true_a righteousness_n and_o that_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o in_o christ_n see_v therefore_o that_o by_o this_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v it_o be_v manifest_a what_o the_o word_n faith_n do_v signify_v in_o this_o proposition_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n hereupon_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o monk_n and_o other_o do_v dangerous_o err_v which_o do_v command_v those_o that_o be_v turn_v to_o god_n to_o doubt_v whether_o they_o do_v please_v god_n this_o common_a error_n of_o doubt_v be_v evident_o refute_v by_o these_o word_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n also_o therefore_o be_v righteousness_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o promise_n may_v be_v sure_a for_o so_o long_o as_o man_n heart_n be_v torment_v with_o doubt_v they_o fly_v from_o god_n they_o do_v not_o rest_v in_o god_n nor_o call_v upon_o he_o and_o the_o promise_n become_v unto_o they_o but_o a_o vain_a sound_n because_o they_o give_v not_o consent_v unto_o it_o to_o conclude_v it_o be_v the_o eternal_a and_o immutable_a commandment_n of_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v believe_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o this_o say_n the_o spirit_n shall_v convince_v the_o world_n of_o sin_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o in_o i_o also_o 1_o joh._n 5._o he_o that_o believe_v not_o god_n make_v he_o a_o liar_n now_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a cavil_n when_o they_o say_v that_o we_o must_v doubt_v in_o respect_n of_o our_o unworthiness_n and_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o mercy_n for_o the_o promise_n be_v therefore_o give_v therefore_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v appoint_v our_o mediator_n because_o we_o be_v unworthy_a and_o that_o for_o his_o sake_n have_v suffer_v be_v raise_v up_o again_o and_o now_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o and_o dwell_v in_o we_o and_o clothing_n we_o with_o his_o righteousness_n the_o father_n may_v undoubted_o be_v merciful_a to_o this_o miserable_a lump_n of_o we_o be_v unworthy_a and_o full_a of_o filthiness_n according_a to_o that_o say_n there_o be_v now_o no_o condemation_n to_o they_o which_o walk_v in_o christ_n jesus_n also_o it_o be_v absurd_a which_o they_o say_v that_o we_o must_v doubt_v by_o reason_n of_o our_o unworthiness_n for_o we_o be_v not_o to_o doubt_v whether_o our_o unworthiness_n do_v displease_v god_n but_o with_o true_a sigh_n let_v we_o confess_v that_o we_o be_v unworthy_a &_o let_v we_o lay_v to_o the_o promise_n whereunto_o god_n have_v command_v we_o to_o assent_v neither_o be_v that_o say_n eccles_n 9_o fit_o apply_v to_o this_o doubt_v man_n know_v not_o whether_o he_o be_v worthy_a of_o love_n or_o of_o hatred_n it_o be_v madness_n to_o imagine_v that_o solomon_n shall_v have_v any_o such_o meaning_n that_o neither_o the_o just_a nor_o the_o unjust_a aught_o to_o determine_v with_o themselves_o whether_o they_o please_v or_o displease_v god_n see_v it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o they_o which_o persevere_v in_o wicked_a deed_n again_o their_o conscience_n do_v displease_v god_n but_o solomon_n do_v withdraw_v we_o from_o external_a show_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o though_o he_o shall_v say_v do_v not_o determine_v with_o thyself_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o thy_o prosperity_n thou_o be_v in_o favour_n with_o god_n or_o by_o reason_n of_o thy_o adversity_n thou_o be_v out_o of_o favour_n with_o he_o alexander_n do_v not_o therefore_o please_v god_n because_o he_o be_v a_o conqueror_n and_o enjoy_v a_o large_a empire_n let_v not_o job_n in_o his_o calamity_n nor_o david_n in_o his_o exile_n think_v that_o they_o be_v forsake_v of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v miserable_a let_v they_o not_o judge_v according_a to_o these_o event_n or_o outward_a show_n but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o then_o even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o our_o misery_n we_o shall_v receive_v this_o comfort_n as_o i_o live_v i_o will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n etc._n etc._n god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v etc._n etc._n to_o conclude_v this_o error_n of_o doubt_v be_v altogether_o heathenish_a and_o do_v abolish_v the_o gospel_n and_o in_o true_a conversion_n take_v away_o comfort_n from_o they_o that_o feel_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n man_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v teach_v that_o this_o be_v undoubted_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o we_o shall_v believe_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o be_v assure_v that_o grace_n do_v abound_v much_o more_o than_o sin_n and_o therefore_o let_v we_o withstand_v doubt_v by_o wrestle_v get_v the_o upper_a hand_n and_o by_o faith_n overcome_v it_o that_o we_o may_v have_v access_n to_o god_n invocate_v he_o and_o give_v he_o thanks_o these_o chief_a point_n of_o worship_n be_v fearful_o hinder_v when_o man_n mind_n be_v shake_v with_o the_o wave_n of_o doubt_v as_o experience_n teach_v hereof_o it_o be_v evident_a why_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o tridentine_a council_n which_o confirm_v the_o error_n of_o doubt_v shall_v be_v reprooved_a also_o by_o all_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v it_o may_v be_v understand_v that_o we_o do_v just_o find_v fault_n with_o that_o synecdoche_n whereby_o some_o interpret_v paul_n word_n after_o this_o sort_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n that_o be_v by_o a_o form_a love_n as_o they_o speak_v for_o they_o understand_v the_o word_n faith_n only_o of_o knowledge_n and_o think_v that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n that_o be_v we_o be_v prepare_v to_o righteousness_n that_o be_v to_o other_o virtue_n to_o wit_n obedience_n and_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n so_o this_o be_v it_o only_o which_o they_o say_v man_n be_v righteous_a for_o his_o own_o virtue_n then_o they_o will_v he_o to_o doubt_v whether_o he_o be_v furnish_v with_o those_o habit_n whereof_o they_o speak_v now_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o that_o by_o faith_n be_v signify_v a_o confidence_n rest_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o reconciler_n for_o who_o we_o be_v receive_v and_o do_v please_v god_n not_o for_o our_o virtue_n or_o fulfil_v the_o law_n and_o see_v that_o in_o this_o same_o comfort_n the_o confidence_n whereby_o we_o do_v rest_n in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v indeed_o a_o motion_n kindle_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereby_o the_o heart_n be_v quicken_v and_o free_v from_o eternal_a death_n this_o conversion_n be_v call_v regeneration_n joh._n 3._o except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o now_o man_n be_v make_v indeed_o the_o dwell_a place_n of_o god_n who_o be_v effectual_a in_o he_o as_o it_o be_v say_v joh._n 14._o if_o any_o man_n love_v i_o he_o will_v keep_v my_o word_n and_o my_o father_n will_v love_v he_o and_o we_o will_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o will_v dwell_v with_o he_o the_o eternal_a father_n and_o the_o son_n by_o the_o
lord_n be_v my_o merit_n i_o be_o not_o without_o merit_n so_o long_o as_o the_o lord_n of_o mercy_n be_v not_o want_v and_o if_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v many_o i_o abound_v in_o merit_n gregory_n say_v therefore_o our_o righteous_a advocate_n shall_v mariae_fw-la greg._n lib._n 1._o super_fw-la ezech._n hom_n 7._o in_o fine_a bern._n in_o serm._n 1._o annunciat_a b●●tae_fw-la mariae_fw-la defend_v we_o in_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n because_o we_o know_v and_o accuse_v ourselves_o to_o be_v unjust_a therefore_o let_v we_o not_o trust_v to_o our_o tear_n nor_o to_o our_o action_n but_o to_o the_o allege_v of_o our_o advocate_n bernard_n say_v our_o rejoice_v be_v this_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n not_o such_o a_o testimony_n as_o that_o proud_a pharisee_n have_v his_o thought_n be_v seduce_v and_o seduce_v he_o giving_z witness_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o witness_n be_v not_o true_a but_o than_o be_v the_o witness_n true_a when_o the_o spirit_n bear_v witness_v with_o our_o spirit_n now_o i_o believe_v that_o this_o testimony_n consist_v in_o three_o thing_n for_o first_o of_o all_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o believe_v that_o thou_o can_v not_o have_v remission_n of_o sin_n but_o through_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n second_o that_o thou_o can_v have_v no_o good_a work_n at_o all_o except_o he_o also_o give_v it_o to_o thou_o last_o that_o thou_o can_v not_o deserve_v eternal_a life_n by_o any_o work_n except_o that_o also_o be_v give_v thou_o free_o out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o sveveland_n of_o justification_n and_o of_o faith_n chap._n 3._o our_o preacher_n do_v some_o what_o differ_v from_o the_o late_o receive_v opinion_n about_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o people_n be_v common_o teach_v concern_v the_o mean_a whereby_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o christ_n and_o touch_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n those_o point_n which_o we_o have_v follow_v we_o will_v endeavour_v to_o lay_v open_a most_o plain_o to_o your_o sacred_a majesty_n and_o also_o to_o declare_v very_o faithful_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n by_o which_o we_o be_v force_v hereunto_o first_o therefore_o see_v that_o we_o be_v teach_v of_o late_a year_n that_o work_n be_v necessary_o require_v to_o justification_n our_o preacher_n have_v teach_v that_o this_o whole_a justification_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v receive_v by_o faith_n alone_o to_o this_o they_o be_v move_v especial_o by_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o many_o as_o receive_v he_o to_o they_o he_o give_v power_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n even_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n which_o be_v bear_v not_o of_o blood_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o the_o flesh_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n joh._n 1._o very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o a_o new_a he_o can_v see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n joh._n 3._o no_o man_n know_v the_o son_n but_o the_o father_n neither_o know_v any_o man_n the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o matt._n 11._o bless_a be_v thou_o simon_n the_o son_n of_o jonas_n for_o flesh_n and_o blood_n have_v not_o reveal_v this_o unto_o thou_o but_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n matth._n 16._o no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o i_o except_o my_o father_n draw_v he_o joh._n 6._o by_o grace_n be_v you_o save_v through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n not_o of_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v himself_o for_o we_o be_v his_o workmanship_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o good_a work_n which_o god_n have_v ordain_v that_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o eph._n 2._o for_o see_v it_o be_v our_o righteousness_n and_o eternal_a life_n to_o know_v god_n and_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o work_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v bear_v again_o anew_o neither_o can_v we_o come_v to_o the_o son_n except_o the_o father_n draw_v we_o neither_o know_v the_o father_n except_o the_o son_n reveal_v he_o unto_o we_o and_o paul_n do_v write_v so_o express_o not_o of_o yourselves_o not_o of_o work_n it_o be_v evident_a enough_o that_o our_o work_n can_v help_v nothing_o at_o all_o that_o of_o unjust_a such_o as_o we_o be_v bear_v we_o may_v become_v righteous_a because_o that_o as_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o therefore_o unjust_a so_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v just_a or_o acceptable_a to_o god_n but_o the_o begin_n of_o all_o our_o righteousness_n and_o salvation_n must_v proceed_v from_o the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o of_o his_o only_a favour_n and_o the_o contemplation_n of_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n do_v first_o offer_v the_o doctrine_n of_o truth_n and_o his_o gospel_n send_v those_o that_o shall_v preach_v it_o and_o second_o see_v that_o natural_a man_n can_v as_o paul_n say_v 1_o cor._n 2._o perceive_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n he_o cause_v also_o the_o beam_n of_o his_o light_n to_o arise_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o our_o heart_n that_o now_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o gospel_n preach_v be_v persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n from_o above_o and_o then_o forthwith_o trust_v to_o the_o testimony_n of_o this_o spirit_n in_o the_o confidence_n of_o child_n to_o call_v upon_o god_n and_o to_o say_v abba_n father_n obtain_v thereby_o true_a salvation_n according_a to_o that_o say_n whosoever_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v save_v of_o good_a work_n proceed_v out_o of_o faith_n through_o love_n these_o thing_n we_o will_v not_o have_v man_n so_o to_o understand_v as_o though_o we_o place_v salvation_n and_o righteousness_n in_o the_o slothful_a thought_n of_o man_n or_o in_o faith_n destitute_a of_o love_n which_o they_o call_v faith_n without_o form_n see_v that_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v just_a or_o save_v except_o he_o do_v chief_o love_v and_o most_o earnest_o imitate_v god_n for_o those_o which_o he_o know_v before_o he_o also_o predestinate_v to_o be_v make_v like_o to_o the_o image_n of_o his_o sinne._n but_o no_o man_n can_v love_v god_n above_o all_o thing_n and_o worthy_o imitate_v he_o but_o he_o which_o do_v indeed_o know_v he_o and_o do_v assure_o look_v for_o all_o good_a thing_n from_o he_o therefore_o we_o can_v otherwise_o be_v justify_v that_o be_v as_o to_o become_v righteous_a so_o to_o be_v save_v for_o righteousness_n be_v even_o our_o salvation_n then_o by_o be_v endue_v chief_o with_o faith_n in_o he_o by_o which_o faith_n we_o believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o be_v persuade_v that_o god_n have_v take_v we_o for_o his_o adopt_a child_n and_o that_o he_o will_v for_o ever_o show_v himself_o a_o love_a father_n unto_o we_o let_v we_o whole_o depend_v upon_o his_o pleasure_n this_o faith_n saint_n augustine_n do_v call_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o operibus_fw-la evangelicall_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o be_v effectual_a through_o love_n by_o this_o faith_n we_o be_v bear_v again_o and_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v repair_v in_o we_o by_o this_o faith_n whereas_o we_o be_v bear_v corrupt_a our_o thought_n even_o from_o our_o childhood_n be_v altogether_o bend_v unto_o evil_n we_o become_v good_a and_o upright_o for_o hereupon_o we_o be_v full_o satisfy_v with_o one_o god_n the_o spring_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n that_o be_v never_o dry_a but_o run_v always_o most_o plentiful_o we_o do_v forthwith_o show_v ourselves_o as_o it_o be_v god_n towards_o other_o that_o be_v towards_o the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n endeavour_v by_o love_n to_o profit_v they_o so_o much_o as_o in_o we_o lie_v for_o he_o that_o love_v his_o brother_n abide_v in_o the_o light_n and_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o be_v whole_o give_v to_o the_o new_a and_o to_o the_o old_a commandment_n touch_v mutual_a love_n and_o this_o love_n be_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o whole_a law_n as_o paul_n say_v the_o whole_a law_n be_v fulfil_v in_o one_o word_n namely_o this_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o gal._n 5._o for_o whatsoever_o the_o law_n teach_v hitherto_o it_o tend_v and_o this_o one_o thing_n it_o require_v that_o at_o the_o length_n we_o may_v be_v reform_v to_o the_o perfect_a image_n of_o god_n be_v good_a in_o all_o thing_n and_o ready_a and_o willing_a to_o do_v man_n good_a the_o which_o we_o can_v do_v except_o we_o be_v adorn_v
with_o all_o kind_n of_o virtue_n for_o who_o can_v purpose_v and_o do_v all_o thing_n as_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a do_v require_v 1_o cor._n 10._o to_o the_o true_a edify_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o sound_a profit_n of_o all_o man_n that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n except_o that_o he_o both_o think_v speak_v and_o do_v every_o thing_n in_o order_n and_o well_o and_o therefore_o be_v very_o familliar_o acquaint_v with_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o virtue_n to_o who_o good_a work_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v and_o how_o necessary_a they_o be_v chap._n 5._o but_o see_v that_o they_o which_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v rather_o 8._o rom._n 8._o lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n then_o do_v work_v any_o thing_n themselves_o and_o that_o of_o he_o and_o through_o he_o and_o for_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n therefore_o 11._o rom._n 11._o whatsoever_o thing_n we_o do_v well_o and_o holy_o be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o none_o other_o then_o to_o this_o one_o only_a spirit_n the_o giver_n of_o all_o virtue_n howsoever_o it_o be_v he_o do_v not_o compel_v we_o but_o do_v lead_v we_o be_v willing_a work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v philip._n 2._o whereupon_o saint_n augustine_n write_v very_o well_o that_o god_n do_v reward_v his_o work_n in_o we_o and_o yet_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o reject_v good_a work_n that_o we_o do_v utter_o deny_v that_o any_o man_n can_v full_o be_v save_v except_o he_o be_v thus_o far_o bring_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o find_v no_o want_n at_o all_o in_o he_o touch_v those_o good_a work_n whereunto_o god_n have_v create_v he_o for_o there_o be_v divers_a member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n therefore_o every_o one_o of_o we_o have_v not_o the_o same_o office_n 1_o cor._n 12._o it_o be_v so_o necessary_a that_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v that_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v soon_o pass_v away_o than_o any_o one_o jot_n or_o the_o least_o point_n thereof_o shall_v be_v remit_v yet_o because_o god_n alone_o be_v good_a have_v create_v all_o thing_n of_o nothing_o and_o do_v by_o his_o spirit_n make_v we_o altogether_o new_a and_o do_v whole_o lead_v we_o for_o in_o christ_n nothing_o avail_v but_o a_o new_a creature_n none_o of_o all_o these_o thing_n can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o man_n strength_n and_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v the_o mere_a gift_n of_o god_n who_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n and_o not_o for_o any_o merit_n of_o we_o do_v favour_n and_o love_v we_o by_o these_o thing_n it_o may_v sufficient_o be_v know_v what_o we_o believe_v justification_n to_o be_v by_o who_o it_o be_v wrought_v for_o we_o and_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o be_v receive_v of_o we_o also_o by_o what_o place_n of_o scripture_n we_o be_v induce_v so_o to_o believe_v for_o alalthough_o of_o many_o we_o have_v allege_v a_o few_o yet_o by_o these_o few_o any_o one_o that_o be_v but_o mean_o conversant_a in_o the_o scripture_n may_v full_o perceive_v that_o they_o which_o read_v the_o scripture_n shall_v find_v every_o where_o such_o kind_n of_o sentence_n as_o do_v attribute_n unto_o we_o nothing_o but_o sin_n and_o destruction_n as_o hosea_n say_v and_o all_o our_o righteousness_n and_o salvation_n to_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_n man_n chap._n 6._o now_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v of_o what_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n and_o to_o what_o action_n he_o ought_v chief_o to_o give_v himself_o namely_o to_o all_o those_o whereby_o every_o one_o for_o his_o part_n may_v profit_v his_o neighbour_n and_o that_o first_o in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o life_n eternal_a that_o they_o also_o may_v begin_v to_o know_v worship_n and_o fear_v god_n and_o then_o in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o this_o life_n that_o they_o may_v want_v nothing_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o sustenance_n of_o the_o body_n for_o as_o the_o whole_a law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v a_o most_o absolute_a commandment_n of_o all_o righteousness_n be_v brief_o contain_v in_o this_o one_o word_n thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o so_o in_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o love_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o righteousness_n shall_v be_v comprise_v and_o perfect_v whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o nothing_o at_o all_o be_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n which_o be_v not_o of_o force_n and_o effect_n to_o profit_v our_o neighbour_n and_o every_o work_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o belong_v to_o the_o duty_n of_o christian_a man_n by_o how_o much_o his_o neighbour_n may_v the_o more_o be_v profit_v thereby_o therefore_o next_o after_o ecclesiastical_a function_n among_o the_o chief_a duty_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n we_o place_v the_o government_n of_o the_o common_a weal_n obedience_n to_o magistrate_n for_o these_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o common_a profit_n that_o care_n which_o be_v take_v for_o our_o wife_n child_n family_n and_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o parent_n because_o that_o without_o these_o the_o life_n of_o man_n can_v consist_v and_o last_o the_o profession_n of_o good_a art_n and_o of_o all_o honest_a discipline_n because_o that_o except_o these_o be_v have_v in_o estimation_n we_o shall_v be_v destitute_a of_o the_o great_a good_a thing_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o mankind_n yet_o in_o these_o and_o all_o other_o duty_n pertain_v to_o man_n like_a no_o man_n must_v rash_o take_v any_o thing_n to_o himself_o but_o with_o a_o right_a conscience_n consider_v whereunto_o god_n do_v call_v he_o to_o conclude_v let_v every_o man_n account_n that_o his_o duty_n and_o that_o so_o much_o the_o more_o excellent_a a_o duty_n the_o more_o that_o he_o shall_v profit_v other_o man_n thereby_o the_o ten_o section_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o latter_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n 17._o forasmuch_o as_o god_n from_o the_o beginning_n will_v have_v man_n to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o always_o from_o the_o beginning_n at_o this_o day_n and_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o church_n that_o be_v a_o company_n of_o the_o faithful_a call_v and_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o world_n a_o communion_n i_o say_v of_o all_o saint_n that_o be_v of_o they_o who_o do_v true_o know_v and_o right_o worship_n and_o serve_v the_o true_a god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o saviour_n by_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o which_o by_o faith_n be_v partaker_n of_o all_o those_o good_a grace_n which_o be_v free_o offer_v through_o christ_n these_o all_o be_v citizen_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o city_n live_v under_o one_o lord_n under_o the_o same_o law_n and_o in_o the_o same_o fellowship_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n call_v they_o fellow_n 6._o ephes_n 2._o 1_o cor._n 6._o citizen_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o household_n of_o god_n term_v the_o faithful_a upon_o the_o earth_n saint_n who_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n of_o these_o be_v that_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n whole_o to_o be_v understand_v i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o see_v that_o there_o be_v always_o but_o one_o god_n and_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n jesus_n christ_n also_o one_o shepherd_n of_o the_o whole_a flock_n one_o head_n of_o this_o body_n and_o to_o conclude_v one_o spirit_n one_o salvation_n one_o faith_n one_o testament_n or_o covenant_n it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n which_o we_o therefore_o call_v catholic_a because_o it_o be_v universal_a spread_v abroad_o through_o all_o the_o part_n and_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n and_o reach_v unto_o all_o time_n and_o be_v not_o limit_v within_o the_o compass_n either_o of_o time_n or_o place_n here_o therefore_o we_o must_v condemn_v the_o donatist_n who_o pin_v up_o the_o church_n within_o the_o corner_n of_o africa_n neither_o do_v we_o allow_v of_o the_o roman_a clergy_n who_o vaunt_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rom●_n 〈◊〉_d in_o a_o manner_n be_v catholic_a the_o church_n be_v divide_v by_o some_o into_o divers_a part_n or_o divers_a sort_n not_o that_o it_o be_v rend_v and_o divide_v from_o itself_o but_o rather_o distinguish_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o member_n that_o be_v in_o it_o one_o part_n thereof_o they_o make_v to_o be_v the_o church_n militant_a the_o other_o the_o church_n triumphant_a the_o militant_a war_v still_o on_o
observat_fw-la upon_o this_o confession_n artic._n 6._o lucifer_n which_o prefer_v himself_o before_o his_o brethren_n that_o he_o have_v forsake_v the_o faith_n and_o be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n further_o we_o say_v that_o the_o minister_n ought_v lawful_o due_o and_o orderly_o to_o be_v prefer_v to_o that_o office_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o no_o man_n have_v power_n to_o wrest_v himself_o into_o the_o holy_a ministry_n at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n wherefore_o these_o person_n do_v we_o the_o great_a wrong_n which_o have_v nothing_o so_o common_a in_o their_o mouth_n as_o that_o we_o do_v nothing_o orderly_a and_o comely_a but_o all_o thing_n troublesome_o and_o without_o order_n and_o that_o we_o allow_v every_o man_n to_o be_v a_o priest_n to_o be_v a_o teacher_n and_o to_o be_v a_o interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n moreover_o we_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v to_o his_o minister_n power_n 7._o artic._n 7._o to_o bind_v to_o loose_v to_o open_v to_o shut_v and_o we_o say_v that_o the_o office_n of_o lose_v consist_v in_o this_o point_n that_o the_o minister_n either_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n offer_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o full_a pardon_n to_o such_o as_o have_v lowly_a and_o contrite_a heart_n and_o do_v unfeigned_o repent_v themselves_o pronounce_v unto_o the_o same_o a_o sure_a and_o a_o undoubted_a forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o hope_v of_o everlasting_a salvation_n or_o else_o that_o the_o same_o minister_n when_o any_o have_v offend_v their_o brother_n mind_n with_o some_o great_a offence_n or_o notable_a and_o open_a crime_n whereby_o they_o have_v as_o it_o be_v banish_v and_o make_v themselves_o stranger_n from_o the_o common_a followship_n and_o from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n then_o after_o perfect_a amendment_n of_o such_o person_n do_v reconcile_v they_o and_o bring_v they_o home_o again_o and_o restore_v they_o to_o the_o company_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o faithful_a we_o say_v also_o that_o the_o minister_n do_v execute_v the_o authority_n of_o bind_v and_o shut_v as_o often_o as_o he_o shut_v up_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n against_o unbelieved_a and_o stubborn_a person_n denounce_v unto_o they_o god_n vengeance_n and_o everlasting_a punishment_n or_o else_o when_o he_o do_v quite_o shut_v they_o out_o from_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n confession_n church_n look_v the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o this_o confession_n by_o open_a excommunication_n out_o of_o doubt_n what_o sentence_n soever_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n shall_v give_v in_o this_o sort_n god_n himself_o do_v so_o well_o allow_v it_o that_o whatsoever_o here_o in_o earth_n by_o their_o mean_n be_v loose_v and_o bind_v god_n himself_o will_v loose_v and_o bind_v and_o confirm_v the_o same_o in_o heaven_n and_o touch_v the_o key_n wherewith_o they_o may_v either_o shut_v or_o open_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o with_o chrysostome_n say_v they_o be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n with_o tertullian_n we_o say_v they_o be_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o with_o eusebius_n we_o call_v they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n moreover_o that_o christ_n disciple_n do_v receive_v this_o authority_n not_o that_o they_o shall_v hear_v the_o private_a confession_n of_o the_o people_n and_o listen_v to_o their_o whisper_n as_o the_o common_a mass_a priest_n do_v every_o where_o now_o a_o day_n and_o do_v it_o so_o as_o though_o in_o that_o one_o point_n lay_v all_o the_o virtue_n and_o use_v of_o the_o key_n but_o to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v go_v they_o shall_v teach_v they_o shall_v publish_v abroad_o the_o gospel_n and_o be_v unto_o the_o believe_a a_o sweet_a savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n and_o unto_o the_o unbelieved_a and_o unfaithful_a confession_n unfaithful_a look_v the_o 2._o observation_n upon_o this_o confession_n a_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n and_o that_o the_o mind_n of_o godly_a person_n be_v bring_v low_o by_o the_o remorse_n of_o their_o former_a life_n and_o error_n after_o they_o once_o begin_v to_o look_v up_o unto_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o believe_v in_o christ_n may_v be_v open_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n even_o as_o a_o door_n be_v open_v with_o a_o key_n contrariwise_o that_o the_o wicked_a and_o wilful_a and_o such_o as_o will_v not_o believe_v nor_o return_v into_o the_o right_a way_n shall_v be_v leave_v still_o as_o fast_o lock_v and_o shut_v up_o and_o as_o saint_n paul_n say_v wax_v worse_o 3._o 2_o tim._n 3._o and_o worse_o this_o take_v we_o to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o key_n and_o that_o after_o this_o sort_n man_n conscience_n be_v either_o open_v or_o shut_v we_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n in_o deed_n be_v a_o judge_n in_o this_o case_n but_o yet_o have_v no_o manner_n of_o right_a to_o challenge_v a_o authority_n or_o power_n as_o ambrose_n observavation_n *_o look_v the_o 3._o observavation_n say_v and_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n to_o reproove_v the_o negligence_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n in_o teach_v do_v with_o these_o word_n rebuke_v they_o say_v woe_n be_v unto_o you_o scribe_n and_o 21._o luk._n 11._o matth._n 21._o pharisee_n which_o have_v take_v away_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n and_o have_v shut_v up_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n before_o man_n see_v then_o the_o key_n whereby_o the_o way_n and_o entry_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v open_v unto_o we_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o expound_v of_o the_o law_n and_o scripture_n we_o say_v plain_o where_o the_o same_o word_n be_v not_o there_o be_v not_o the_o key_n and_o see_v one_o manner_n of_o word_n be_v give_v 16._o matth._n 16._o to_o all_o and_o one_o only_a key_n belong_v to_o all_o we_o say_v there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a power_n of_o all_o minister_n as_o concern_v open_v and_o shut_v and_o as_o confession_n as_o look_v the_o 4._o observat_fw-la upon_o this_o confession_n touch_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o all_o that_o his_o flatter_a parasite_n sing_v these_o word_n in_o his_o ear_n to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o though_o these_o key_n be_v sit_v for_o he_o alone_o and_o for_o no_o body_n else_o confession_n else_o look_v the_o 4._o observat_fw-la upon_o this_o confession_n except_o he_o go_v so_o to_o work_v as_o man_n conscience_n may_v be_v make_v pliant_a and_o be_v subdue_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o deny_v that_o he_o do_v either_o open_a or_o shut_v or_o have_v the_o key_n at_o all_o and_o although_o he_o teach_v and_o instruct_v the_o people_n as_o woo_a god_n he_o may_v ofice_v true_o do_v and_o persuade_v himself_o it_o be_v at_o the_o least_o any_o piece_n of_o his_o duty_n yet_o we_o think_v his_o key_n to_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n better_o or_o of_o great_a force_n than_o other_o man_n for_o who_o have_v sever_v he_o from_o the_o rest_n who_o have_v teach_v he_o more_o cunning_o to_o open_v or_o better_a to_o absolve_v than_o his_o brethren_n out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o belgia_n we_o believe_v that_o this_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v rule_v and_o govern_v 30._o artic._n 30._o by_o that_o spiritual_a regiment_n which_o god_n himself_o have_v deliver_v in_o his_o word_n so_o that_o there_o be_v place_v in_o it_o pastor_n and_o minister_n pure_o to_o preach_v and_o right_o to_o administer_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n that_o there_o be_v also_o in_o it_o seniors_n and_o deacon_n of_o who_o the_o senate_n of_o church_n may_v consist_v that_o by_o these_o mean_v true_a religion_n may_v be_v preserve_v and_o sincere_a doctrine_n in_o every_o place_n place_n retain_v and_o spread_v abroad_o that_o vicious_a and_o wicked_a man_n may_v after_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n be_v rebuke_v amend_v and_o as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o bridle_n of_o discipline_n keep_v within_o their_o compass_n that_o the_o poor_a be_v like_o manner_n and_o those_o that_o be_v afflict_v may_v be_v relieve_v either_o with_o aid_n or_o comfort_n according_a to_o the_o several_a necessity_n of_o every_o one_o for_o than_o shall_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n be_v do_v in_o due_a and_o convenient_a order_n when_o faithful_a and_o godly_a man_n be_v choose_v to_o have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o same_o even_o as_o st._n paul_n have_v prescribe_v in_o the_o first_o to_o timothy_n the_o 3._o and_o the_o first_o to_o titus_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o minister_n senour_n and_o deacon_n aught_o 31._o artic._n 31._o to_o be_v call_v to_o those_o their_o function_n and_o by_o the_o lawful_a election_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v advance_v into_o those_o room_n earnest_a prayer_n be_v make_v unto_o god_n and_o after_o the_o order_n and_o manner_n which_o be_v set_v down_o unto_o we_o
in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o especial_o every_o one_o ought_v to_o take_v diligent_a heed_n of_o that_o he_o do_v not_o by_o unlawful_a mean_n thrust_v himself_o into_o those_o office_n for_o every_o one_o must_v wait_v until_o he_o be_v call_v of_o god_n himself_o that_o he_o may_v have_v a_o certain_a testimony_n of_o his_o vocation_n and_o may_v know_v that_o it_o be_v from_o the_o lord_n yet_o in_o what_o place_n of_o the_o world_n soever_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v keep_v they_o have_v all_o of_o they_o the_o same_o and_o equal_a power_n and_o authority_n be_v all_o of_o they_o equal_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n the_o only_a universal_a bishop_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n moreover_o lest_o that_o this_o holy_a ordinance_n of_o god_n be_v despise_v and_o bring_v into_o contempt_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o man_n to_o have_v a_o very_a honourable_a and_o reverend_a opinion_n of_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o seniors_n of_o the_o church_n even_o for_o that_o work_v sake_n wherein_o they_o do_v labour_n also_o to_o be_v at_o peace_n and_o unity_n with_o they_o and_o as_o much_o as_o possible_o may_v be_v to_o abstain_v from_o all_o manner_n of_o quarrelling_n and_o contention_n one_o with_o another_o out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a order_n they_o teach_v that_o no_o man_n 14._o artic._n 14._o shall_v public_o in_o the_o church_n teach_v or_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n except_o he_o be_v right_o call_v according_a as_o saint_n paul_n give_v commandment_n to_o titus_n to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n out_o of_o the_o article_n concern_v abuse_n of_o the_o power_n ecclesiastical_a there_o have_v be_v great_a controversy_n touch_v the_o power_n and_o 7._o artic._n 7._o authority_n of_o bishop_n in_o which_o many_o have_v incommodious_o mingle_v together_o the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n and_o out_o of_o this_o confusion_n there_o have_v spring_v very_o great_a war_n and_o tumult_n while_o that_o the_o pope_n bear_v themselves_o bold_a upon_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n have_v not_o only_o appoint_v new_a kind_n of_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n and_o burden_a man_n conscience_n by_o reserve_v of_o case_n and_o by_o violent_a excommunication_n but_o also_o have_v labour_v to_o transfer_v worldly_a kingdom_n from_o one_o to_o another_o and_o to_o spoil_v emperor_n of_o their_o power_n and_o authority_n these_o fault_n do_v godly_a and_o learned_a man_n long_o since_o reprehend_v in_o the_o church_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n our_o divine_n be_v fain_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o man_n conscience_n to_o show_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a power_n and_o they_o have_v teach_v that_o either_o of_o they_o because_o of_o god_n commandment_n be_v dutiful_o to_o be_v reverence_v and_o honour_v as_o the_o chief_a blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n now_o their_o judgement_n be_v this_o that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o the_o power_n of_o the_o bishop_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o power_n or_o commandment_n from_o god_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o remit_v or_o retain_v sin_n and_o of_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n for_o christ_n do_v send_v his_o apostle_n with_o this_o charge_n as_o the_o father_n have_v send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v they_o and_o who_o sin_n you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v mar._n 16._o go_v and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n etc._n etc._n this_o power_n be_v put_v in_o execution_n only_o by_o teach_v or_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n either_o to_o many_o joint_o or_o to_o several_a person_n according_a to_o their_o call_n for_o they_o be_v not_o corporal_a thing_n but_o eternal_a that_o be_v grant_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o eternal_a righteousness_n the_o holy_a ghost_n life_n everlasting_a these_o thing_n can_v be_v get_v but_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n as_o paul_n say_v the_o gospel_n be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v see_v then_o that_o the_o power_n ecclesiastical_a concern_v thing_n eternal_a and_o be_v put_v in_o use_n only_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n it_o hinder_v not_o the_o political_a government_n observation_n government_n look_v the_o 1._o observation_n no_o more_o than_o do_v the_o *_o skill_n of_o music_n or_o sing_v for_o the_o civil_a government_n be_v occupy_v about_o other_o matter_n then_o be_v the_o gospel_n observation_n gospel_n look_v the_o 2._o observation_n the_o magistrate_n be_v to_o defend_v not_o the_o mind_n but_o the_o body_n and_o bodily_a thing_n against_o manifest_a injury_n he_o restrain_v man_n by_o the_o sword_n and_o corporal_a punishment_n that_o he_o may_v uphold_v peace_n and_o a_o civil_a justice_n wherefore_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a power_n be_v not_o to_o be_v confound_v the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n have_v a_o peculiar_a commandment_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n let_v it_o not_o by_o force_n enter_v into_o another_o charge_n let_v it_o not_o turn_v worldly_a kingdom_n from_o the_o right_a owner_n let_v it_o not_o abrogate_v the_o magistrate_n law_n let_v it_o not_o withdraw_v from_o they_o lawful_a obedience_n let_v it_o not_o hinder_v judgement_n touch_v any_o civil_a ordinance_n and_o statute_n or_o contract_n let_v it_o not_o prescribe_v law_n to_o the_o magistrate_n touch_v the_o form_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n as_o christ_n say_v my_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n again_o who_o make_v i_o a_o judge_n over_o you_o and_o paul_n to_o the_o philip._n 3._o our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n 2_o cor._n 10._o the_o weapon_n of_o our_o warfare_n be_v not_o carnal_a but_o mighty_a in_o god_n to_o throw_v down_o the_o imagination_n etc._n etc._n thus_o do_v our_o divine_n discern_v and_o distinguish_v the_o duty_n of_o each_o power_n one_o from_o the_o other_o and_o do_v warn_v all_o man_n to_o honour_v both_o power_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v both_o to_o be_v the_o good_a gift_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n confession_n god_n look_v the_o 3._o observation_n upon_o this_o confession_n if_o so_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n have_v any_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n they_o have_v it_o not_o as_o bishop_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o by_o man_n law_n give_v unto_o they_o of_o king_n and_o emperor_n for_o the_o civil_a government_n of_o their_o good_n yet_o this_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o function_n and_o charge_n diverse_a from_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n therefore_o when_o as_o the_o question_n be_v touch_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n rule_n and_o dominion_n must_v be_v distinguish_v from_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n again_o by_o the_o gospel_n or_o as_o they_o term_v it_o by_o god_n law_n bishop_n as_o they_o be_v bishop_n that_o be_v such_o as_o have_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n commit_v to_o they_o have_v no_o jurisdiction_n at_o all_o but_o only_o to_o forgive_v sin_n also_o to_o know_v what_o be_v true_a doctrine_n and_o to_o reject_v such_o doctrine_n as_o will_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o gospel_n and_o observation_n and_o look_v the_o 4._o observation_n to_o debar_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o be_v notorious_o wicked_a not_o by_o humane_a force_n and_o violence_n but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o *_o herein_o of_o necessity_n the_o church_n ought_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o perform_v obedience_n unto_o they_o according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o christ_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o but_o when_o as_o they_o teach_v or_o determine_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n then_o have_v the_o church_n a_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o forbid_v obedience_n to_o they_o matt._n 7._o beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n gal._n 1._o if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v any_o other_o gospel_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v 2_o cor._n 13._o we_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o truth_n but_o for_o the_o truth_n also_o this_o power_n be_v give_v we_o to_o edify_v and_o not_o to_o destroy_v so_o do_v the_o canon_n command_n 2._o quaest_n 7._o cap._n sacerdotes_fw-la &_o cap._n oves_fw-la and_o augustine_n in_o his_o treatise_n against_o petilians_n epistle_n say_v neither_o must_v we_o subscribe_v to_o catholic_a bishop_n if_o they_o chance_v to_o err_v or_o hold_v opinion_n which_o be_v against_o the_o scripture_n if_o so_o be_v observat_fw-la be_v look_v the_o 6_o observat_fw-la that_o they_o have_v any_o other_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n in_o hear_v and_o understand_v certai●●_n case_n as_o namely_o of_o matrimony_n and_o
tithe_n etc._n etc._n they_o hold_v it_o by_o man_n law_n and_o that_o in_o such_o place_n where_o the_o ordinary_a judge_n fail_v the_o prince_n be_v constrain_v will_v they_o will_v they_o to_o minister_v justice_n to_o their_o subject_n for_o maintain_v of_o peace_n and_o a_o few_o line_n after_o so_o oft_o as_o we_o handle_v this_o place_n by_z and_o by_o our_o adversary_n cry_v out_o that_o the_o bishop_n authority_n be_v overthrow_v there_o follow_v disorder_n that_o the_o people_n behaviour_n can_v be_v order_v that_o the_o common_a sort_n wax_v lusty_a and_o unbridled_a and_o in_o a_o word_n there_o follow_v a_o hellish_a life_n such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v paint_v out_o by_o euripides_n in_o this_o verse_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o complain_v also_o that_o when_o as_o some_o law_n be_v abrogate_a the_o common_a people_n take_v it_o as_o a_o pattern_n how_o to_o deal_v with_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o so_o shake_v off_o the_o bond_n and_o reins_n of_o discipline_n and_o order_n they_o take_v a_o excessive_a liberty_n to_o themselves_o which_o breed_v infinite_a offence_n breach_n between_o prince_n scatter_v of_o church_n tumult_n war_n and_o desolation_n to_o conclude_v they_o tell_v we_o here_o what_o a_o enemy_n to_o mankind_n want_v of_o government_n be_v and_o how_o many_o vice_n and_o calamity_n arise_v out_o of_o this_o fountain_n do_v overflow_v the_o whole_a life_n of_o man_n they_o advise_v therefore_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o these_o so_o great_a evil_n to_o establish_v the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n to_o retain_v still_o the_o law_n that_o have_v be_v in_o use_n before_o and_o also_o to_o bear_v with_o the_o inconvenience_n if_o there_o be_v any_o in_o they_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o common_a weakness_n of_o man_n and_o for_o quietness_n sake_n to_o dissemble_v they_o especial_o see_v there_o can_v no_o state_n or_o order_n be_v appoint_v which_o be_v without_o all_o manner_n of_o fault_n here_o also_o they_o bring_v in_o that_o old_a say_n that_o a_o evil_a well_o couch_v be_v not_o to_o be_v stir_v they_o rehearse_v many_o example_n how_o great_a overthrow_v follow_v upon_o the_o remove_v of_o law_n and_o the_o change_n of_o the_o form_n of_o government_n in_o the_o city_n of_o athens_n sparta_n rome_n and_o divers_a other_o at_o rome_n how_o oft_o do_v the_o dissension_n of_o the_o consul_n and_o the_o tribune_n stir_v up_o great_a civil_a war_n though_o these_o senator_n like_o declamation_n be_v very_o plausible_a and_o incense_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o against_o we_o yet_o they_o may_v be_v confute_v by_o most_o true_a and_o substantial_a argument_n first_o therefore_o we_o desire_v that_o these_o our_o accuser_n will_v turn_v over_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o that_o they_o will_v not_o think_v that_o those_o notable_a man_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v withit_z common_a sense_n and_o reason_n and_o so_o hard_o heart_v that_o they_o cane_v not_o for_o the_o peace_n and_o quiet_a of_o their_o country_n or_o so_o barbarous_a and_o cruel_a that_o they_o make_v no_o great_a account_n of_o the_o discipline_n law_n and_o good_a order_n of_o the_o kingdom_n for_o those_o most_o wise_a virtuous_a and_o grave_a man_n esay_n jonas_n jeremy_n john_n baptist_n observation_n baptist_n look_v the_o 7._o observation_n christ_n peter_n james_n and_o paul_n do_v both_o know_v what_o a_o great_a good_a civil_a concord_n be_v and_o love_v their_o country_n and_o countryman_n and_o also_o be_v greeve_v to_o behold_v the_o discord_n and_o rent_v a_o sunder_o of_o those_o notable_a commonwealth_n how_o often_o do_v christ_n weep_v when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o discord_n and_o tumult_n of_o his_o nation_n and_o the_o sack_n of_o the_o city_n albeit_o therefore_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v very_o well_o know_v and_o great_o like_a of_o those_o civil_a duty_n yet_o be_v they_o constrain_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o war_n against_o the_o devil_n kingdom_n to_o preach_v heavenly_a doctrine_n to_o collect_v a_o church_n unto_o god_n and_o to_o employ_v their_o service_n to_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n of_o a_o great_a number_n of_o man_n these_o be_v the_o first_o law_n that_o ever_o be_v give_v and_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o thou_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o go_n thou_o shall_v not_o take_v the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a and_o this_o concern_v the_o son_n this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n hear_v he_o these_o law_n must_v needs_o be_v obey_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o god_n and_o his_o true_a worship_n must_v needs_o be_v embrace_v and_o receive_v and_o all_o error_n that_o tend_v to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n must_v be_v abhor_v and_o forsake_v though_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v break_v and_o fall_v down_o no_o humane_a thing_n must_v be_v prefer_v before_o god_n commandment_n not_o our_o life_n not_o our_o friend_n not_o the_o concord_n and_o agreement_n of_o neighbour_n and_o countryman_n moses_n a_o very_a wise_a man_n &_o no_o doubt_n a_o politic_a man_n lay_v upon_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n the_o charge_n of_o teach_v and_o know_v what_o great_a conflict_n and_o danger_n teacher_n shall_v meet_v withal_o he_o forewarn_v they_o of_o that_o which_o he_o take_v to_o be_v most_o difficult_a of_o all_o other_o and_o charge_v they_o that_o the_o defence_n of_o true_a doctrine_n be_v most_o dear_a unto_o they_o for_o so_o he_o say_v deut._n 33._o these_o shall_v keep_v thy_o word_n and_o shall_v forget_v their_o parent_n child_n and_o brethren_n and_o hereof_o we_o have_v experience_n that_o it_o be_v no_o small_a burden_n that_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o word_n our_o man_n be_v cruel_o deal_v with_o in_o many_o place_n we_o be_v sore_o oppress_v and_o the_o discord_n in_o our_o country_n bring_v no_o small_a grief_n unto_o we_o but_o as_o be_v say_v before_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o embrace_v of_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o god_n and_o renounce_n of_o error_n must_v be_v prefer_v before_o these_o great_a inconvenience_n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a what_o wise_a man_n have_v write_v of_o change_v and_o alter_v law_n we_o remember_v well_o the_o say_n of_o plato_n that_o as_o the_o manner_n of_o dote_a parent_n so_o the_o custom_n and_o fashion_n of_o our_o country_n though_o none_o of_o the_o wise_a be_v to_o be_v bear_v with_o all_o but_o these_o precept_n have_v their_o bound_n and_o limit_n within_o which_o they_o must_v be_v restrain_v bondage_n without_o impiety_n may_v be_v bear_v but_o idolatry_n be_v not_o to_o be_v bear_v with_o nor_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v extinguish_v again_o why_o do_v our_o adversary_n declaim_v of_o such_o a_o moderation_n unto_o we_o when_o as_o they_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n murder_v the_o citizen_n and_o member_n of_o christ_n they_o may_v easy_o establish_v peace_n and_o maintain_v the_o author_n of_o good_a order_n if_o they_o will_v abolish_v superstition_n and_o unjust_a law_n but_o now_o they_o contend_v not_o for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o church_n but_o for_o their_o own_o profit_n and_o pleasure_n they_o will_v not_o have_v the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o mass_n nor_o pray_v to_o the_o dead_a speak_v against_o because_o they_o can_v abide_v that_o their_o gain_n shall_v decrease_v they_o forbid_v wander_a lust_n because_o the_o unmarried_a state_n be_v best_a for_o the_o keep_n of_o their_o good_n these_o thing_n be_v in_o all_o man_n eye_n therefore_o let_v they_o leave_v of_o their_o senator_n like_o invective_n wherein_o to_o use_v the_o old_a poet_n word_n under_o a_o fair_a colour_n they_o seek_v to_o establish_v shameless_a fact_n hereto_o i_o adjoyne_v also_o the_o other_o part_n of_o our_o defence_n both_o true_a and_o unfeigned_a we_o do_v not_o shake_v of_o government_n to_o bring_v in_o disorder_n we_o teach_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v most_o high_o to_o be_v reverence_v and_o obey_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o according_a to_o the_o gospel_n do_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o ministry_n thereof_o and_o he_o be_v a_o wicked_a and_o a_o accurse_a wretch_n that_o do_v not_o with_o reverence_n entertain_v as_o most_o beautiful_a the_o foot_n of_o such_o as_o bring_v tide_n of_o peace_n and_o as_o for_o the_o civil_a power_n which_o bear_v the_o sword_n it_o have_v be_v high_o commend_v and_o approve_v in_o our_o writing_n wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o vile_a slander_n that_o they_o object_n against_o we_o that_o we_o be_v enemy_n of_o government_n hitherto_o also_o belong_v the_o ss_z in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o 7._o article_n they_o allege_v against_o we_o also_o other_o say_n which_o command_v obedience_n obey_v those_o that_o be_v set_v over_o you_o how_o oft_o must_v we_o answer_v that_o
obedience_n be_v most_o necessary_a in_o such_o thing_n as_o belong_v proper_o to_o this_o ministry_n ordain_v of_o god_n for_o these_o say_n do_v not_o allot_v unto_o bishop_n a_o kingdom_n without_o the_o gospel_n christ_n give_v they_o certain_a commandment_n and_o those_o he_o will_v have_v we_o obey_v again_o he_o forbid_v that_o any_o new_a find_v worship_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o in_o the_o church_n and_o such_o he_o will_v not_o have_v we_o yield_v unto_o there_o be_v certain_a bond_n and_o limit_n prefix_v within_o which_o both_o the_o pastors_n authority_n and_o our_o obedience_n must_v contain_v itself_o but_o these_o limit_n do_v those_o bishop_n most_o malapert_o remove_v who_o proud_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o a_o triple_a power_n whereby_o they_o establish_v most_o pernicious_a error_n to_o wit_n a_o princely_a and_o supreme_a power_n of_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n second_o a_o power_n of_o erect_v new_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n three_o a_o sovereign_a power_n of_o make_v new_a law_n and_o thus_o they_o trans_z form_n the_o church_n into_o a_o humane_a government_n they_o imagine_v forsooth_o that_o as_o the_o prince_n or_o high_a judge_n in_o a_o realm_n be_v to_o interpret_v the_o law_n and_o as_o the_o prince_n have_v power_n to_o make_v new_a law_n so_o the_o bishop_n must_v have_v a_o power_n in_o the_o church_n not_o unlike_o that_o and_o they_o can_v abide_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o the_o dumb_a writing_n as_o they_o call_v they_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n which_o because_o sometime_o they_o scarce_o make_v the_o matter_n plain_a enough_o which_o they_o do_v set_v down_o the_o ambiguity_n breed_v dissension_n and_o discord_n here_o therefore_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v say_v they_o a_o definitive_a voice_n of_o some_o sovereign_a or_o high_a judge_n to_o interpret_v that_o which_o be_v ambiguous_a and_o doubtful_o write_v and_o except_o all_o be_v tie_v to_o stand_v to_o their_o interpretation_n there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o strife_n and_o controversy_n again_o unless_o they_o may_v according_a as_o time_n and_o occasion_n require_v make_v law_n what_o a_o disorder_n will_v there_o follow_v these_o thing_n be_v set_v out_o with_o big_a word_n and_o they_o carry_v a_o show_n of_o probability_n in_o they_o because_o they_o be_v in_o imitation_n of_o the_o civil_a government_n and_o sure_o such_o conceit_n as_o these_o have_v in_o all_o age_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n hurt_v the_o church_n great_o and_o still_o will_v hurt_v it_o the_o godly_a be_v therefore_o to_o be_v admonish_v that_o they_o be_v not_o overtake_v with_o these_o subtlety_n &_o sleight_n god_n will_v have_v his_o church_n govern_v by_o his_o word_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v leave_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o he_o will_v have_v this_o his_o voice_n to_o sound_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o minister_n and_o though_o it_o do_v contain_v a_o wisdom_n that_o be_v far_o from_o reason_n reach_v yet_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v sure_a and_o not_o doubtful_a therefore_o peter_n say_v you_o do_v well_o in_o attend_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n as_o to_o a_o light_n in_o the_o darkness_n beside_o the_o church_n have_v the_o gift_n of_o interpretation_n that_o be_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n but_o that_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o the_o name_n or_o degree_n of_o bishop_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o power_n of_o interpret_n like_o to_o the_o power_n of_o a_o prince_n or_o high_a judge_n but_o those_o that_o be_v learn_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o bear_v again_o by_o his_o spiritin_n what_o place_n soever_o they_o be_v they_o assent_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o understand_v the_o same_o some_o more_o some_o less_o man_n must_v therefore_o judge_v wise_o of_o those_o huge_a bulwark_n of_o the_o people_n power_n touch_v law_n to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o bishop_n peter_z say_v in_o a_o word_n why_o do_v you_o tempt_v god_n lay_v a_o yoke_n on_o they_o etc._n etc._n out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o wirtemberge_n of_o order_n it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o all_o they_o which_o be_v indeed_o 20._o artic._n 20._o christian_n be_v consecrate_v in_o baptism_n by_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v spiritual_a priest_n and_o that_o they_o ought_v always_o to_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n spiritual_a sacrifice_n neither_o be_v it_o unknown_a that_o christ_n in_o his_o church_n have_v institute_v minister_n who_o shall_v preach_v his_o gospel_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v permit_v to_o every_o one_o although_o he_o be_v a_o spiritual_a priest_n to_o usurp_v a_o public_a ministry_n in_o the_o church_n without_o a_o lawful_a call_n for_o paul_n say_v let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v honest_o and_o decent_o among_o you_o and_o again_o lay_v hand_n sudden_o on_o no_o man_n wherefore_o we_o do_v not_o account_v it_o a_o unprofitable_a thing_n to_o prove_v as_o it_o be_v by_o certain_a step_n the_o faith_n of_o they_o that_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o public_a ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o it_o seem_v not_o a_o little_a to_o further_a concord_n and_o unity_n to_o keep_v a_o due_a order_n among_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o teach_v we_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v in_o his_o church_n such_o priest_n as_o shall_v be_v mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o pacify_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n towards_o man_n by_o their_o sacrifice_n and_o apply_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a without_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o if_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o the_o great_a and_o true_a mediator_n there_o be_v but_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n confession_n god_n look_v the_o 2._o observat_fw-la upon_o this_o confession_n if_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o the_o mediator_n of_o pray_v every_o godly_a man_n be_v make_v a_o mediator_n each_o for_o other_o through_o jesus_n because_o that_o their_o duty_n do_v require_v that_o they_o shall_v commend_v one_o another_o health_n to_o god_n in_o their_o prayer_n the_o which_o duty_n also_o then_o every_o one_o do_v perform_v when_o they_o say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n in_o faith_n if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o do_v purge_v our_o sin_n and_o appease_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n then_o be_v there_o one_o only_a sacrifice_n which_o do_v purge_v we_o and_o reconcile_v god_n unto_o we_o to_o wit_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v once_o make_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o as_o christ_n do_v die_v no_o more_o death_n have_v no_o more_o dominion_n over_o he_o so_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o he_o shall_v never_o be_v make_v again_o but_o by_o his_o one_o oblation_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n he_o have_v make_v perfect_a for_o ever_o those_o that_o be_v sanctify_v if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o remembrance_n of_o this_o one_o sacrifice_n and_o of_o the_o apply_v of_o the_o merit_n thereof_o than_o the_o public_a minister_n of_o the_o church_n which_o do_v teach_v the_o gospel_n public_o and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o make_v a_o true_a and_o right_a remembrance_n of_o this_o purge_a sacrifice_n but_o do_v also_o apply_v by_o their_o dispensation_n the_o merit_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n to_o all_o those_o that_o do_v receive_v the_o gospel_n and_o the_o sacrament_n by_o faith_n therefore_o we_o can_v see_v what_o use_n there_o be_v of_o those_o kind_n of_o man_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v ordain_v for_o this_o purpose_n that_o they_o may_v have_v authority_n to_o sacrifice_v for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a paul_n when_o as_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o ephesian_n he_o rehearse_v those_o office_n and_o ministery_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o edify_a and_o preserve_v of_o the_o church_n he_o reckon_v prophet_n apostle_n evangelist_n pastor_n doctor_n and_o such_o like_a but_o in_o this_o rehearsal_n he_o make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o private_a priest_n of_o which_o sort_n the_o world_n be_v now_o full_a neither_o be_v it_o like_v that_o he_o will_v have_v omit_v this_o kind_n of_o priest_n if_o either_o christ_n have_v appoint_v it_o or_o if_o it_o have_v be_v profitable_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n and_o paul_n write_v that_o a_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v apt_a to_o teach_v and_o jerome_n teach_v that_o a_o priest_n and_o a_o bishop_n be_v all_o one_o therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o
and_o there_o which_o be_v add_v for_o the_o people_n instruction_n for_o therefore_o we_o have_v need_n of_o ceremony_n that_o they_o may_v teach_v the_o unlearned_a and_o that_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n may_v stir_v up_o some_o unto_o the_o true_a fear_n trust_v and_o invocation_n of_o god_n this_o be_v not_o only_o command_v by_o saint_n paul_n to_o use_v a_o tongue_n that_o the_o people_n understand_v but_o man_n law_n have_v also_o appoint_v it_o we_o use_v the_o people_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n together_o if_o so_o be_v any_o be_v find_v fit_a thereunto_o and_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o do_v increase_v the_o reverence_n and_o due_a estimation_n of_o the_o public_a ceremony_n for_o none_o be_v admit_v except_o they_o be_v first_o prove_v and_o try_v beside_o we_o use_v to_o put_v man_n in_o mind_n of_o the_o worthiness_n and_o use_n of_o a_o sacrament_n what_o great_a comfort_n it_o offer_v unto_o they_o which_o repent_v to_o the_o end_n that_o man_n may_v learn_v to_o fear_n god_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o to_o use_v prayer_n and_o supplication_n unto_o he_o look_v for_o all_o good_a thing_n at_o his_o hand_n this_o be_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o christian_n these_o service_n of_o fear_n faith_n prayer_n hope_v etc._n etc._n god_n do_v like_a of_o when_o therefore_o these_o service_n be_v perform_v and_o exercise_v in_o the_o use_n of_o ceremony_n then_o do_v the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n please_v god_n so_o that_o when_o as_o the_o people_n be_v use_v to_o the_o ceremony_n and_o advertise_v of_o the_o true_a use_n thereof_o the_o mass_n be_v say_v with_o we_o after_o meet_v and_o godly_a manner_n and_o thus_o all_o thing_n be_v order_v in_o the_o church_n with_o great_a gravity_n and_o reverence_n then_o in_o time_n past_a it_o be_v not_o unknown_a that_o these_o many_o age_n past_o there_o have_v be_v common_a &_o open_a complaintmade_a by_o good_a man_n of_o the_o abuse_n and_o profane_v of_o mass_n for_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v see_v how_o far_o this_o abuse_n have_v spread_v itself_o in_o all_o temple_n and_o church_n what_o kind_n of_o man_n they_o be_v that_o say_v the_o mass_n flat_a contrary_n to_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o canon_n also_o how_o shameful_o they_o be_v turn_v to_o a_o matter_n of_o curse_a lucre_n for_o many_o there_o be_v that_o say_v mass_n without_o repentance_n only_o for_o the_o belly_n sake_n these_o thing_n be_v too_o open_a and_o manifest_a to_o be_v keep_v any_o long_a in_o hug_a mugger_n sure_o it_o seem_v that_o never_o any_o religious_a thing_n since_o the_o world_n begin_v be_v so_o common_o turn_v into_o gain_n as_o the_o mass_n but_o saint_n paul_n do_v fearful_o threaten_v they_o which_o deal_v otherwise_o with_o these_o sacrament_n then_o be_v beseem_v the_o dignity_n of_o they_o where_o he_o say_v he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n unworthy_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o the_o ten_o commandment_n it_o be_v write_v he_o that_o abuse_v god_n holy_a name_n shall_v not_o escape_v unpunished_a as_o therefore_o the_o world_n have_v of_o thereto_o fore_o be_v just_o punish_v for_o i_o dolatrie_n doubtless_o this_o shameless_a profane_v of_o mass_n will_v be_v fearful_o revenge_v with_o grievous_a plague_n and_o it_o may_v well_o be_v that_o the_o church_n in_o these_o latter_a time_n be_v punish_v with_o blindness_n discord_n and_o war_n and_o many_o other_o plague_n chief_o for_o this_o one_o cause_n and_o yet_o these_o open_a and_o gross_a abuse_n have_v the_o bishop_n who_o can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o they_o not_o only_o bear_v with_o all_o but_o also_o smooth_o laugh_v at_o they_o and_o now_o all_o too_o late_o they_o begin_v to_o complain_v forsooth_o of_o the_o calamity_n of_o the_o church_n when_o as_o no_o other_o thing_n have_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o broil_n of_o these_o time_n but_o the_o abuse_n themselves_o which_o be_v now_o become_v too_o open_a and_o evident_a that_o modest_a man_n can_v no_o long_o bear_v they_o i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o the_o bishop_n have_v as_o by_o their_o office_n they_o may_v have_v long_o before_o this_o bridle_a and_o restrain_v the_o covetousness_n or_o impudency_n whether_o of_o monk_n or_o of_o some_o other_o who_o change_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o old_a church_n have_v make_v the_o mass_n a_o money_n matter_n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o now_o to_o show_v whence_o these_o abuse_n do_v spring_n at_o the_o first_o there_o be_v a_o opinion_n spread_v abroad_o in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o work_n which_o be_v once_o do_v by_o the_o priest_n deserve_v remission_n of_o sin_n both_o of_o the_o fault_n and_o of_o the_o punishment_n not_o only_o for_o he_o that_o do_v it_o but_o also_o for_o they_o and_o that_o because_o of_o the_o work_n do_v although_o it_o be_v do_v without_o any_o good_a intent_n of_o the_o doer_n likewife_n that_o if_o it_o be_v apply_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v satisfactory_a that_o be_v it_o deserve_v remission_n of_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n and_o in_o this_o meaning_n they_o take_v the_o word_n sacrifice_n when_o they_o call_v the_o mass_n a_o sacrifice_n namely_o a_o work_n that_o be_v do_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o some_o other_o do_v merit_n for_o they_o both_o remission_n of_o the_o fault_n and_o of_o the_o punishment_n and_o that_o because_o of_o the_o very_a work_n do_v even_o without_o any_o good_a intent_n of_o he_o that_o use_v it_o thus_o they_o mean_v that_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o mass_n do_v offer_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o after_o this_o persuasion_n be_v once_o receive_v they_o teach_v man_n to_o seek_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o all_o good_a thing_n yea_o and_o that_o the_o dead_a be_v free_v from_o punishment_n by_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o it_o make_v no_o matter_n what_o kind_n of_o man_n they_o be_v that_o say_v the_o mass_n for_o they_o teach_v that_o they_o be_v very_o available_a for_o other_o without_o any_o good_a motion_n of_o the_o user_n afterward_o a_o question_n arise_v whether_o one_o mass_n say_v for_o many_o be_v as_o available_a as_o several_a mass_n for_o several_a person_n and_o this_o disputation_n do_v augment_v the_o number_n of_o mass_n and_o the_o gain_n that_o come_v in_o by_o they_o out_o of_o measure_n but_o we_o dispute_v not_o now_o of_o the_o gain_n we_o only_o accuse_v the_o impiety_n of_o they_o for_o our_o divine_n do_v prove_v plain_o that_o this_o opinion_n of_o the_o merit_a and_o apply_v of_o the_o mass_n be_v both_o false_a and_o impious_a this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o this_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o they_o and_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n for_o the_o godly_a to_o judge_v of_o this_o point_n if_o a_o man_n will_v but_o weigh_v the_o argument_n that_o follow_v first_o we_o have_v prove_v before_o that_o man_n do_v obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n free_o by_o faith_n that_o be_v by_o sure_a trust_n to_o obtain_v mercy_n for_o christ_n sake_n it_o be_v then_o impossible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n for_o another_o man_n work_n and_o that_o without_o any_o good_a motion_n that_o be_v without_o his_o own_o faith_n this_o reason_n do_v very_o evident_o overthrow_v that_o monstrous_a and_o impious_a opinion_n touch_v the_o merit_n and_o application_n of_o the_o mass_n second_o christ_n passion_n be_v a_o oblation_n and_o satisfaction_n not_o only_o for_o original_a sin_n but_o also_o for_o all_o other_o sin_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n we_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o oblation_n of_o christ_n once_o offer_v again_o by_o one_o oblation_n he_o have_v make_v perfect_a for_o ever_o those_o that_o be_v sanctify_v to_o conclude_v a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o heb._n be_v spend_v in_o confirm_v this_o point_n that_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n do_v merit_v remission_n of_o sin_n or_o reconciliation_n for_o other_o therefore_o say_v he_o the_o leviticall_a sacrifice_n be_v oft_o time_n offer_v in_o one_o manner_n because_o they_o can_v not_o take_v away_o sin_n but_o christ_n by_o his_o sacrifice_n have_v at_o once_o satisfy_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n this_o honour_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n must_v not_o be_v transfer_v from_o he_o to_o the_o work_n of_o a_o priest_n for_o he_o say_v express_o that_o by_o one_o oblation_n the_o saint_n be_v make_v perfect_a beside_o it_o be_v a_o wicked_a thing_n to_o place_v that_o trust_n in_o the_o work_n of_o a_o priest_n which_o shall_v only_o lean_v and_o stay_v itself_o upon_o the_o oblation_n and_o
faith_n and_o his_o own_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o when_o we_o in_o our_o own_o person_n use_v the_o sacrament_n christ_n institution_n of_o it_o do_v belong_v unto_o we_o this_o kind_n of_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v holy_a and_o to_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n which_o do_v give_v light_n unto_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o spiritual_a exercise_n and_o true_a worship_n and_o bring_v unto_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o godly_a very_o great_a comfort_n and_o strength_n of_o faith_n before_o these_o day_n the_o church_n have_v be_v far_o otherwise_o teach_v touch_v the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v no_o word_n of_o any_o thing_n but_o that_o this_o work_n be_v to_o be_v do_v but_o no_o man_n speak_v any_o thing_n of_o faith_n or_o the_o comfort_n of_o conscience_n and_o man_n conscience_n be_v rack_v with_o over_o great_a care_n and_o pain_n of_o confess_v themselves_o this_o they_o take_v to_o be_v the_o purity_n which_o the_o gospel_n require_v whereas_o the_o gospel_n do_v require_v true_a fear_n true_a faith_n and_o trust_v comfort_v we_o by_o the_o use_n of_o this_o sacrament_n that_o they_o which_o do_v true_o repent_v may_v assure_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v become_v merciful_a unto_o they_o by_o christ_n though_o that_o our_o nature_n be_v frail_a and_o unclean_a and_o though_o that_o this_o our_o imperfect_a obedience_n be_v far_o from_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n by_o all_o this_o that_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o mass_n that_o be_v in_o use_n among_o we_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o beside_o it_o do_v notable_o lay_v open_a the_o true_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n such_o a_o common_a work_n be_v there_o in_o the_o church_n of_o old_a time_n as_o chrysostome_n do_v witness_v who_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n do_v stand_v at_o the_o altar_n and_o call_v some_o unto_o the_o communion_n and_o put_v back_o other_o and_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o nicen_n synod_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o some_o one_o do_v celebrate_v the_o liturgy_n as_o the_o grecian_n call_v it_o and_o do_v minister_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n let_v the_o deacon_n in_o their_o order_n after_o the_o priest_n receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o of_o a_o priest_n here_o he_o do_v express_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n do_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o some_o one_o that_o minister_v it_o and_o before_o gregory_n time_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o private_a mass_n but_o as_o oft_o as_o the_o old_a writer_n speak_v of_o a_o mass_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o speak_v of_o a_o mass_n that_o be_v common_a see_v therefore_o that_o the_o rite_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o mass_n use_v with_o we_o have_v authority_n out_o of_o scripture_n example_n from_o the_o old_a church_n and_o that_o we_o have_v only_o reject_v certain_a intolerable_a abuse_n we_o hope_v that_o the_o use_n of_o our_o church_n can_v be_v mislike_v as_o for_o other_o indifferent_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n they_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n observe_v according_a to_o the_o usual_a manner_n but_o the_o number_n of_o mass_n be_v not_o alike_o neither_o be_v it_o the_o use_n in_o the_o old_a time_n in_o the_o church_n whereunto_o be_v great_a resort_n to_o have_v mass_n every_o day_n as_o the_o tripartite_a history_n lib._n 9_o cap._n 38._o do_v witness_n again_o say_v he_o in_o alexandria_n every_o four_o and_o six_o day_n of_o the_o week_n the_o scripture_n be_v read_v and_o the_o doctor_n do_v interpret_v they_o and_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v do_v also_o except_o only_o the_o solemn_a mannerof_o oblation_n or_o offering_n this_o article_n we_o find_v elsewhere_o place_v in_o the_o three_o place_n among_o those_o wherein_o the_o abuse_n that_o be_v change_v be_v reckon_v up_o in_o this_o manner_n of_o the_o mass_n art_n 3._o our_o church_n be_v wrongful_o accuse_v to_o have_v abolish_v the_o mass_n for_o observation_n for_o look_v the_o 2._o observation_n the_o mass_n be_v retain_v still_o among_o we_o and_o celebrate_v with_o great_a reverence_n yea_o and_o almost_o all_o the_o ceremony_n that_o be_v in_o use_n save_v that_o with_o the_o song_n in_o latin_a we_o mingle_v certain_a psalm_n in_o dutch_a here_o and_o there_o which_o be_v add_v for_o the_o people_n instruction_n for_o therefore_o we_o have_v need_n of_o ceremony_n that_o they_o may_v teach_v the_o unlearned_a and_o that_o the_o preach_v of_o god_n word_n may_v stir_v up_o some_o unto_o the_o true_a fear_n trust_v and_o invocation_n of_o god_n this_o be_v not_o only_o command_v by_o saint_n paul_n to_o use_v a_o tongue_n that_o the_o people_n understand_v but_o man_n law_n have_v also_o appoint_v it_o we_o use_v the_o people_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n together_o if_o so_o be_v any_o be_v find_v fit_a thereunto_o and_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o do_v increase_v the_o reverence_n and_o due_a estimation_n of_o the_o public_a ceremony_n for_o none_o be_v admit_v except_o they_o be_v first_o prove_v and_o try_v beside_o we_o use_v to_o put_v man_n in_o mind_n of_o the_o worthiness_n and_o use_n of_o a_o sacrament_n how_o great_a comfort_n it_o bring_v to_o fearful_a conscience_n that_o they_o may_v learn_v to_o believe_v god_n and_o to_o look_v for_o and_o crave_v all_o good_a thing_n at_o his_o hand_n this_o worship_n do_v please_v god_n such_o a_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v nourish_v piety_n towards_o god_n therefore_o it_o seem_v not_o that_o mass_n be_v more_o religious_o celebrate_v among_o our_o adversary_n then_o with_o we_o but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o of_o long_a time_n this_o have_v be_v the_o public_a and_o most_o grievous_a complaint_n of_o all_o good_a man_n that_o mass_n be_v filthy_o profane_v be_v use_v for_o gain_n and_o it_o be_v not_o unknown_a how_o far_o this_o abuse_n have_v spread_v itself_o in_o all_o church_n of_o what_o manner_n of_o man_n mass_n be_v use_v only_o for_o a_o reward_n or_o for_o wage_n and_o how_o many_o do_v use_v they_o against_o the_o prohibition_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o paul_n do_v grievous_o threaten_v those_o which_o handle_v the_o lord_n supper_n unworthy_o say_v he_o that_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n or_o drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n unworthy_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n therefore_o when_o we_o admonish_v the_o priest_n of_o this_o sin_n private_a mass_n be_v lay_v aside_o among_o we_o see_v that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n there_o be_v no_o private_a mass_n but_o only_o for_o lucre_n sake_n neither_o be_v the_o bishop_n ignorant_a of_o these_o abuse_n who_o if_o they_o have_v amend_v they_o in_o time_n there_o have_v now_o be_v less_o dissension_n heretofore_o by_o their_o dissemble_n they_o suffer_v much_o corruption_n to_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n now_o they_o begin_v though_o it_o be_v late_a to_o complain_v of_o the_o calamity_n of_o the_o church_n see_v that_o this_o hurly_n burly_n be_v raise_v up_o by_o no_o other_o mean_a then_o by_o those_o abuse_n which_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o they_o can_v no_o long_o be_v tolerate_v there_o be_v many_o dissension_n concern_v the_o mass_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o sacrament_n and_o peradventure_o the_o world_n be_v punish_v for_o so_o long_a a_o profane_v of_o mass_n which_o they_o who_o both_o can_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v amend_v it_o have_v so_o many_o year_n tolerate_v in_o their_o church_n for_o in_o the_o ten_o commandment_n it_o be_v write_v he_o that_o abuse_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v not_o escape_v unpunished_a and_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n there_o neither_o be_v nor_o be_v any_o divine_a thing_n which_o may_v seem_v so_o to_o be_v employ_v to_o gain_v as_o be_v the_o mass_n there_o be_v add_v a_o opinion_n which_o do_v increase_v private_a mass_n infinite_o to_o wit_n that_o christ_n by_o his_o passion_n do_v satisfy_v for_o original_a sin_n and_o appoint_a mass_n wherein_o a_o oblation_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o daily_a sin_n both_o mortal_a and_o venial_a hereupon_o a_o common_a opinion_n be_v receive_v that_o mass_n be_v a_o work_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o for_o the_o do_v of_o the_o work_n here_o man_n begin_v to_o dispute_v whether_o one_o mass_n say_v for_o many_o be_v of_o as_o great_a force_n as_o particular_a mass_n say_v for_o particular_a man_n this_o disputation_n have_v bring_v forth_o a_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o mass_n concern_v these_o opinion_n our_o preacher_n have_v
themselves_o rehearse_v those_o great_a thing_n wherewith_o god_n have_v adorn_v she_o above_o all_o other_o woman_n and_o they_o all_o rejoice_v one_o with_o another_o and_o show_v themselves_o most_o thankful_a for_o the_o salvation_n which_o be_v purchase_v to_o mankind_n and_o with_o all_o christian_a people_n they_o confess_v and_o profess_v that_o she_o be_v happy_a and_o they_o praise_v god_n for_o all_o these_o thing_n and_o so_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o they_o they_o do_v faithful_o follow_v and_o imitate_v the_o holy_a life_n and_o good_a manner_n of_o that_o virgin_n and_o they_o do_v indeed_o execute_v that_o which_o she_o command_v to_o they_o that_o minister_v in_o the_o marriage_n at_o cana_n and_o do_v always_o desire_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n with_o she_o and_o all_o these_o thing_n they_o do_v according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o a_o little_a after_o and_o thus_o do_v we_o teach_v that_o the_o saint_n observation_n saint_n look_v the_o 1._o observation_n be_v true_o worship_v when_o the_o people_n on_o certain_a day_n at_o a_o time_n appoint_v do_v come_v together_o to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o do_v call_v to_o mind_n and_o meditate_v upon_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v bestow_v upon_o holy_a man_n and_o through_o they_o upon_o his_o church_n and_o there_o withal_o do_v admonish_v itself_o concern_v their_o call_n or_o place_n which_o they_o hold_v their_o doctrine_n faith_n life_n and_o exercise_n of_o godliness_n and_o the_o last_o end_n of_o their_o life_n to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v be_v as_o it_o be_v build_v up_o in_o the_o same_o truth_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o may_v praise_v god_n and_o give_v he_o thanks_o for_o those_o man_n and_o in_o their_o name_n and_o may_v sing_v observation_n sing_v look_v the_o 2._o observation_n profitable_a song_n and_o such_o as_o be_v free_a from_o superstition_n and_o may_v raise_v and_o stir_v up_o themselves_o to_o the_o like_a obedience_n imitation_n of_o their_o faith_n work_n and_o deed_n godliness_n holiness_n and_o honesty_n and_o that_o they_o may_v call_v upon_o god_n that_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o give_v unto_o they_o to_o enjoy_v their_o company_n and_o fellowship_n as_o well_o here_o in_o the_o time_n of_o grace_n as_o hereafter_o in_o eternal_a glory_n all_o which_o thing_n be_v in_o few_o word_n comprehend_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n where_o it_o be_v say_v remember_v they_o which_o have_v the_o 13._o heb._n 13._o over_o sight_n over_o you_o which_o have_v declare_v unto_o you_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o faith_n follow_v consider_v what_o have_v be_v the_o end_n of_o their_o conversation_n of_o fast_v chap._n 18._o touch_v true_a and_o christian_n fast_v we_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v a_o outward_a work_n of_o faith_n comprehend_v in_o it_o worship_n which_o be_v do_v by_o exercise_v the_o body_n to_o abstinency_n join_v there_o withal_o 6._o matth_n 6._o prayer_n and_o give_v of_o alm_n and_o that_o it_o be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o and_o that_o among_o christian_n according_a as_o their_o strength_n will_v suffer_v and_o their_o affair_n and_o business_n desire_v and_o permit_v at_o what_o time_n soever_o they_o use_v it_o in_o any_o society_n either_o general_a or_o particular_a it_o must_v be_v do_v without_o hypocrisy_n or_o superstition_n as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v witness_v and_o paul_n among_o other_o thing_n do_v thus_o write_v of_o it_o let_v we_o approve_v ourselves_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n by_o 7._o 2_o cor._n 6._o luk._n 5._o 1_o cor._n 7._o fast_v etc._n etc._n and_o christ_n say_v then_o they_o shall_v fast_o and_o again_o paul_n say_v in_o another_o place_n that_o you_o may_v give_v yourselves_o to_o fast_v and_o prayer_n now_o fast_v do_v not_o consist_v in_o the_o choice_n of_o meat_n which_o a_o man_n use_v but_o in_o the_o moderate_a use_n of_o meat_n and_o in_o exercise_v chastise_v and_o bring_v under_o the_o unruly_a flesh_n before_o god_n and_o chief_o the_o matter_n consist_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o in_o the_o heart_n to_o wit_n how_o for_o what_o cause_n with_o what_o intent_n and_o purpose_n a_o man_n do_v fast_o and_o how_o and_o by_o what_o mean_v the_o godly_a may_v exercise_v a_o wholesome_a and_o acceptable_a fast_o unto_o god_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o know_v when_o they_o shall_v not_o fast_o but_o rather_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o do_v not_o fast_o it_o be_v express_v in_o the_o prophet_n and_o manifest_o teach_v 6._o isa_n 56._o matth._n 6._o of_o christ_n himself_o what_o be_v to_o be_v think_v of_o the_o choice_n and_o difference_n of_o meat_n every_o man_n ought_v to_o learn_v out_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n that_o by_o this_o mean_a what_o doubt_n soever_o be_v in_o this_o point_n it_o may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o decide_v the●_n christ_n call_v the_o multitude_n unto_o he_o 15._o matth._n 15._o and_o say_v hear_v and_o understand_v that_o which_o go_v into_o the_o mouth_n 7._o mark_n 7._o defile_v not_o the_o man_n but_o that_o which_o come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n that_o defile_v the_o man_n that_o be_v make_v he_o guilty_a also_o out_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o word_n be_v thus_o i_o be_o persuade_v 14._o rom._n 14._o through_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o nothing_o be_v unclean_a of_o itself_o but_o unto_o he_o that_o judge_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v unclean_a to_o he_o it_o be_v unclean_a but_o if_o thy_o brother_n be_v grieve_v for_o the_o meat_n now_o walk_v not_o thou_o charitable_o destroy_v not_o he_o with_o thy_o meat_n for_o who_o christ_n die_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n nor_o drink_n but_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n christian_n indeed_o be_v not_o tie_v to_o any_o law_n in_o this_o case_n yet_o so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o a_o offence_n to_o the_o weak_a sort_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n add_v all_o thing_n indeed_o 8._o 1_o cor._n 8._o be_v pure_a but_o it_o be_v evil_a for_o the_o man_n which_o eat_v with_o offence_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o write_v meat_n do_v not_o make_v man_n acceptable_a to_o god_n for_o neither_o if_o we_o eat_v have_v we_o the_o more_o neither_o if_o we_o eat_v not_o have_v we_o the_o less_o out_o of_o the_o french_a confession_n to_o conclude_v we_o think_v that_o purgatory_n be_v a_o feign_a thing_n 24._o artic._n 24._o come_v out_o of_o the_o same_o shop_n whence_o also_o monastical_a vow_n pilgrimage_n the_o forbid_v of_o marriage_n the_o use_n of_o meat_n a_o ceremonial_a observation_n of_o certain_a day_n auricular_a confession_n indulgence_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n have_v proceed_v by_o which_o thing_n certain_a man_n have_v think_v that_o they_o do_v deserve_v favour_n and_o salvation_n but_o we_o do_v not_o only_o reject_v all_o those_o thing_n for_o a_o false_a opinion_n of_o merit_n add_v thereunto_o but_o also_o because_o they_o be_v invention_n of_o man_n and_o a_o yoke_n lay_v upon_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n by_o man_n authority_n out_o of_o the_o english_a confession_n and_o as_o for_o their_o brag_n they_o be_v wont_v to_o make_v of_o their_o purgatoris_fw-la 14._o artic._n 14._o though_o we_o know_v it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n so_o very_o late_o rise_v among_o they_o yet_o be_v it_o no_o better_o than_o a_o blockish_a and_o a_o old_a wife_n devise_v augustine_n indeed_o sometime_o say_v there_o be_v such_o a_o certain_a place_n sometime_o he_o deny_v not_o but_o there_o may_v be_v such_o a_o one_o sometime_o he_o doubt_v sometime_o again_o he_o utter_o deni_v that_o there_o be_v any_o at_o all_o and_o think_v that_o man_n be_v therein_o deceive_v by_o a_o certain_a natural_a good_a will_n they_o bear_v their_o friend_n depart_v but_o yet_o of_o this_o one_o error_n have_v there_o grow_v up_o such_o a_o harvest_n of_o those_o massemonger_n that_o the_o mass_n be_v sell_v abroad_o common_o in_o every_o corner_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n become_v shop_n to_o get_v money_n and_o seelyfoul_n be_v bear_v in_o hand_n that_o nothing_o be_v more_o necessary_a to_o be_v buy_v in_o deed_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o gainful_a for_o these_o man_n to_o sell_v out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n of_o abuse_n that_o be_v take_v away_o of_o put_v difference_n between_o meat_n and_o such_o like_a popish_a tradition_n in_o this_o corporal_a life_n we_o have_v need_n of_o tradition_n that_o be_v of_o the_o 4._o artic._n 4._o distinction_n of_o time_n and_o place_n that_o all_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v orderly_o in_o the_o church_n as_o paul_n will_v let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o order_n and_o so_o as_o be_v meet_v and_o decent_a therefore_o the_o church_n have_v her_o tradition_n that_o
unto_o many_o not_o only_o beggarly_a and_o weak_a but_o also_o hurtful_a not_o element_n that_o be_v rudiment_n of_o holy_a discipline_n but_o also_o impediment_n of_o true_a godliness_n how_o much_o more_o unjust_o shall_v any_o man_n take_v unto_o himselfe-authoritie_n over_o the_o inheritance_n of_o christ_n to_o oppress_v he_o with_o such_o kind_n of_o bondage_n and_o how_o far_o shall_v he_o remove_v we_o from_o christ_n if_o we_o submit_v ourselves_o unto_o he_o for_o who_o do_v not_o see_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n to_o who_o we_o ought_v whole_o to_o live_v who_o he_o have_v whole_o redeem_v to_o himself_o and_o restore_v to_o liberty_n and_o that_o by_o his_o blood_n to_o be_v more_o obscure_v if_o beside_o his_o authority_n we_o do_v bind_v our_o conscience_n to_o those_o law_n which_o be_v the_o invention_n of_o man_n then_o to_o those_o which_o have_v god_n for_o their_o author_n although_o they_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v but_o only_o for_o their_o time_n certain_o it_o be_v a_o less_o fault_n to_o play_v the_o jew_n than_o the_o heathen_a now_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o heathen_a to_o receive_v law_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n which_o have_v their_o beginning_n from_o man_n invention_n only_o god_n never_o be_v ask_v counsel_n of_o in_o the_o matter_n wherefore_o if_o in_o any_o matter_n at_o all_o certain_o here_o that_o say_n of_o paul_n take_v place_n you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o great_a price_n be_v not_o make_v the_o servant_n of_o man_n 7._o 1_o cor._n 7._o of_o the_o choice_n of_o meat_n chap._n 9_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n be_v that_o forbear_n and_o choose_v of_o meat_n enjoin_v and_o tie_v to_o certain_a day_n which_o saint_n paul_n write_v to_o timothy_n call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n neither_o be_v their_o answer_n sufficient_a who_o say_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v speak_v only_o against_o the_o manichy_n encratites_n tatians_n and_o marcionite_n who_o do_v whole_o forbid_v certain_a kind_n of_o meat_n and_o marriage_n for_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n have_v condemn_v those_o which_o command_v to_o abstain_v from_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v to_o be_v take_v with_o thanksgiving_n etc._n etc._n now_o they_o also_o which_o do_v but_o forbid_v to_o take_v certain_a meat_n on_o certain_a day_n do_v nevertheless_o command_v man_n to_o abstain_v from_o those_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v to_o be_v take_v and_o be_v cousin_n germans_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o devil_n the_o which_o also_o be_v evident_o see_v by_o the_o reason_n which_o the_o apostle_n add_v for_o say_v he_o whatsoever_o god_n have_v create_v it_o be_v good_a and_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v refuse_v that_o be_v receive_v with_o give_v of_o thanks_o here_o he_o do_v not_o take_v exception_n against_o any_o time_n although_o no_o man_n favour_v frugality_n temperance_n and_o also_o choice_n chastisement_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o lawful_a fast_v more_o great_o than_o he_o do_v certain_o a_o christian_n must_v be_v frugal_a and_o sometime_o the_o flesh_n must_v be_v chastise_v by_o diminish_v the_o daily_a and_o accustom_a portion_n or_o diet_n but_o base_a meat_n and_o a_o mean_a do_v serve_v better_a to_o this_o purpose_n than_o any_o kind_n of_o meat_n to_o conclude_v it_o be_v meet_v for_o christian_n now_o and_o then_o to_o take_v upon_o they_o a_o lawful_a fast_o but_o that_o must_v not_o be_v a_o abstinence_n from_o certain_a but_o from_o all_o meat_n nor_o from_o meat_n only_o but_o also_o from_o all_o the_o dainty_n of_o this_o life_n whatsoever_o for_o what_o kind_n of_o fast_o be_v this_o what_o abstinence_n only_o to_o change_v the_o kind_n of_o dainty_n the_o which_o thing_n at_o this_o day_n they_o use_v to_o do_v which_o be_v count_v more_o religious_a than_o other_o see_v that_o s._n chrysostome_n do_v not_o account_v it_o to_o be_v a_o fast_n if_o we_o continue_v whole_o without_o meat_n even_o unto_o the_o evening_n except_o together_o with_o abstain_v from_o meat_n we_o do_v also_o contain_v ourselves_o from_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v hurtful_a and_o bestow_v much_o of_o that_o leisure_n upon_o the_o study_n and_o exercise_v of_o spiritual_a thing_n that_o by_o prayer_n and_o fast_n we_o must_v not_o look_v to_o merit_v any_o thing_n chap._n 10._o moreover_o our_o preacher_n have_v teach_v that_o this_o fault_n be_v to_o be_v a_o amend_v in_o prayer_n and_o fast_n that_o common_o man_n be_v teach_v to_o seek_v to_o obtain_v i_o know_v not_o what_o merit_n and_o justification_n by_o these_o work_n for_o as_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n so_o also_o be_v we_o justify_v and_o touch_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n among_o the_o which_o prayer_n and_o fast_n be_v reckon_v paul_n write_v thus_o for_o we_o through_o the_o spirit_n wait_v for_o the_o hope_n of_o righteousness_n 5._o gal._n 5._o through_o faith_n therefore_o we_o must_v pray_v but_o to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v of_o god_n not_o that_o we_o may_v hereby_o give_v any_o thing_n unto_o he_o we_o must_v fast_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_a pray_v and_o keep_v the_o flesh_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o it_o duty_n and_o not_o before_o god_n to_o deserve_v any_o thing_n for_o ourselves_o this_o only_a end_n and_o use_v of_o prayer_n both_o the_o scripture_n and_o also_o the_o writing_n and_o example_n of_o the_o father_n do_v prescribe_v unto_o we_o moreover_o the_o case_n so_o stand_v with_o we_o that_o although_o we_o can_v pray_v and_o fast_o so_o religious_o and_o so_o perfect_o do_v all_o those_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v enjoin_v we_o that_o nothing_o can_v more_o be_v require_v of_o we_o which_o hitherto_o no_o mortal_a man_n have_v at_o any_o time_n perform_v yet_o for_o all_o this_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n therefore_o what_o merit_n can_v we_o dream_v of_o the_o seventeen_o section_n of_o ceremony_n and_o rite_n which_o be_v indifferent_a in_o general_n the_o latter_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n of_o rite_n ceremony_n and_o indifferent_a thing_n chap._n 27._o unto_o the_o ancient_a people_n in_o old_a time_n be_v give_v certain_a ceremony_n as_o a_o kind_n of_o school_n or_o pedagogie_n to_o those_o which_o be_v keep_v under_o the_o law_n as_o under_o a_o schoolmaster_n or_o tutor_n but_o christ_n the_o deliverer_n be_v once_o come_v and_o the_o law_n take_v away_o we_o which_o believe_v be_v no_o more_o under_o the_o law_n and_o the_o ceremony_n be_v vanish_v and_o wear_v out_o of_o use_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o far_o from_o retain_v they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n or_o repair_v they_o that_o they_o witness_v plain_o that_o they_o will_v not_o lay_v 6._o rom._n 6._o any_o burden_n upon_o the_o church_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v seem_v to_o bring_v in_o and_o set_v up_o judaisme_n again_o if_o so_o be_v we_o shall_v multiply_v ceremony_n or_o rite_n in_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o old_a church_n therefore_o we_o be_v not_o of_o their_o judgement_n who_o will_v have_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n keep_v in_o with_o many_o and_o diverse_a rite_n as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o certain_a school_n or_o pedagogie_n for_o if_o the_o apostle_n will_v not_o thrust_v upon_o the_o christian_a people_n the_o ceremony_n and_o rite_n which_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n who_o be_v there_o i_o pray_v you_o that_o be_v well_o in_o his_o wit_n that_o will_v thrust_v upon_o it_o the_o invention_n devise_v by_o man_n the_o great_a that_o the_o heap_n of_o ceremony_n be_v in_o the_o church_n so_o much_o the_o more_o be_v take_v not_o only_o from_o christian_a liberty_n but_o also_o from_o christ_n and_o from_o faith_n in_o he_o while_o the_o people_n seek_v those_o thing_n in_o ceremony_n which_o they_o shall_v seek_v in_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n through_o faith_n wherefore_o a_o few_o moderate_a and_o simple_a rite_n that_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v suffice_v the_o godly_a and_o that_o there_o be_v find_v diversity_n of_o rite_n in_o the_o church_n let_v no_o man_n say_v therefore_o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o agree_v socrates_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o set_v down_o in_o write_v all_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v throughout_o city_n and_o country_n no_o religion_n do_v keep_v every_o where_o the_o same_o ceremony_n although_o they_o admit_v and_o receive_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o doctrine_n touch_v they_o for_o even_o they_o which_o have_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o faith_n do_v disagree_v among_o themselves_o about_o ceremony_n thus_o much_o say_v socrates_n and_o we_o at_o this_o day_n have_v divers_a rite_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o
they_o alone_o they_o be_v blind_a leader_n of_o the_o blind_a and_o he_o condemn_v such_o worship_n every_o plant_n which_o my_o heavenly_a father_n have_v not_o plant_v shall_v be_v root_v up_o if_o bishop_n have_v authority_n to_o burden_v the_o church_n with_o innumerable_a tradition_n and_o to_o snare_v man_n conscience_n why_o do_v the_o scripture_n so_o oft_o forbid_v to_o make_v and_o to_o listen_v to_o tradition_n why_o do_v it_o call_v they_o the_o devil_n tradition_n have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n warn_v we_o of_o they_o to_o no_o purpose_n it_o remain_v then_o that_o see_v constitution_n ordain_v as_o necessary_a or_o with_o opinion_n of_o merit_a remission_n of_o sin_n by_o they_o be_v flat_o repugnant_a to_o the_o gospel_n because_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o bishop_n to_o appoint_v or_o urge_v any_o such_o worship_n for_o it_o be_v very_o requisite_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a liberty_n shall_v be_v maintain_v in_o the_o church_n because_o that_o the_o bondage_n of_o the_o law_n be_v not_o necessary_a unto_o justification_n as_o it_o be_v write_v to_o the_o gal._n come_v not_o you_o under_o the_o yoke_n of_o bondage_n again_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o all_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v hold_v fast_o that_o we_o do_v free_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o not_o by_o any_o observation_n nor_o by_o any_o worship_n devise_v by_o man_n for_o though_o they_o seek_v to_o qualify_v tradition_n yet_o the_o equity_n of_o they_o can_v never_o be_v see_v nor_o perceive_v so_o long_o as_o the_o opinion_n of_o necessity_n remain_v which_o must_v needs_o remain_v where_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n and_o christian_a liberty_n be_v not_o know_v the_o apostle_n command_v they_o to_o abstain_v from_o blood_n who_o observe_v that_o now_o a_o day_n and_o yet_o they_o do_v not_o sin_n that_o observe_v it_o not_o for_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o will_v not_o burden_v man_n conscience_n with_o such_o a_o servitude_n but_o they_o forbid_v it_o for_o a_o time_n for_o offence_n sake_n for_o in_o that_o decree_n the_o perpetual_a intent_n and_o mind_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v scarce_o any_o canon_n be_v precise_o keep_v and_o many_o grow_v out_o of_o use_n daily_o yea_o even_o among_o they_o that_o do_v most_o busy_o defend_v tradition_n neither_o can_v there_o be_v sufficient_a care_n have_v of_o man_n conscience_n except_o this_o equity_n be_v keep_v that_o man_n shall_v know_v that_o such_o rite_n be_v not_o to_o be_v observe_v with_o any_o opinion_n of_o necessity_n and_o that_o man_n conscience_n be_v not_o hurt_v though_o tradition_n grow_v out_o of_o use_n the_o bishop_n may_v confession_n may_v look_v the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o this_o confession_n easy_o retain_v lawful_a obedience_n if_o they_o will_v not_o have_v man_n to_o observe_v such_o tradition_n as_o can_v be_v keep_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n but_o now_o they_o command_v single_a life_n and_o they_o admit_v none_o except_o they_o will_v swear_v not_o to_o teach_v the_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o church_n do_v not_o desire_v of_o the_o bishop_n that_o they_o will_v repair_v peace_n and_o concord_n with_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o honour_n which_o yet_o good_a pastor_n ought_v to_o do_v only_o they_o desire_v that_o they_o will_v remit_v unjust_a burden_n which_o be_v both_o new_a and_o receive_v contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o may_v well_o be_v that_o some_o constitution_n have_v some_o probable_a cause_n when_o they_o begin_v which_o yet_o will_v not_o agree_v to_o latter_a time_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o some_o be_v receive_v through_o error_n wherefore_o it_o be_v for_o the_o observat_fw-la the_o look_v the_o 2._o observat_fw-la chief_a bishop_n gentleness_n to_o mitigate_v they_o now_o for_o such_o a_o change_n will_v not_o overthrow_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o many_o humane_a tradition_n have_v be_v change_v in_o time_n as_o the_o canon_n themselves_o declare_v but_o if_o it_o can_v be_v obtain_v that_o those_o observation_n may_v not_o be_v release_v which_o can_v be_v keep_v without_o sin_n then_o must_v we_o follow_v the_o apostle_n rule_v which_o will_v to_o obey_v god_n rather_o than_o man_n peter_n forbid_v bishop_n to_o be_v lord_n and_o to_o be_v imperious_a over_o the_o church_n our_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o have_v observation_n have_v look_v the_o 3._o observation_n rule_v take_v from_o the_o bishop_n but_o this_o one_o thing_n be_v request_v at_o their_o hand_n that_o they_o will_v suffer_v the_o gospel_n to_o be_v pure_o teach_v and_o that_o they_o will_v release_v a_o few_o observation_n which_o can_v be_v observe_v without_o sin_n but_o if_o they_o will_v remit_v none_o let_v they_o look_v how_o they_o will_v give_v account_n to_o god_n for_o this_o that_o by_o their_o wilfulness_n they_o give_v occasion_n of_o schism_n also_o in_o the_o same_o 7._o article_n touch_v abuse_n this_o exposition_n be_v find_v thus_o in_o another_o edition_n now_o come_v i_o to_o the_o question_n in_o hand_n touch_v the_o law_n of_o bishop_n concern_v which_o first_o this_o most_o certain_a rule_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o to_o make_v law_n repugnant_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n that_o sentence_n of_o saint_n paul_n be_v well_o know_v if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n teach_v any_o other_o gospel_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v upon_o this_o foundation_n which_o be_v sure_a and_o immovable_a the_o rest_n may_v easy_o be_v rear_v now_o there_o be_v three_o order_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o bishop_n some_o do_v constrain_v a_o man_n to_o sin_n as_o the_o law_n of_o single_a life_n the_o law_n of_o private_a mass_n wherein_o be_v make_v a_o oblation_n and_o application_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n breed_v a_o wicked_a adoration_n also_o the_o commandment_n of_o pray_v to_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o give_v sentence_n of_o these_o law_n for_o see_v they_o do_v manifest_o oppugn_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n the_o apostle_n rule_n be_v we_o ought_v rather_o to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n the_o second_o order_n be_v of_o those_o rite_n which_o concern_v thing_n in_o their_o own_o nature_n indifferent_a such_o as_o be_v the_o law_n touch_v the_o difference_n of_o meat_n and_o day_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n but_o when_o false_a opinion_n be_v join_v unto_o these_o thing_n they_o be_v no_o more_o indifferent_a now_o our_o adversary_n do_v some_o more_o some_o less_o tie_v unto_o they_o absurd_a and_o false_a opinion_n for_o the_o which_o both_o those_o law_n and_o rite_n be_v to_o be_v cast_v off_o lest_o any_o corrupt_a worship_n shall_v be_v establish_v the_o most_o part_n do_v feign_v that_o the_o work_n of_o man_n tradition_n as_o satisfaction_n and_o such_o like_a do_v merit_n remission_n of_o sin_n this_o opinion_n be_v apparent_o false_a for_o it_o remove_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n unto_o man_n tradition_n and_o there_o need_v here_o no_o long_a confutation_n we_o will_v content_v ourselves_o with_o one_o thunder_a saying_n of_o saint_n paul_n you_o be_v make_v void_a of_o christ_n whosoever_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n you_o be_v fall_v from_o christ_n this_o say_n teach_v that_o man_n do_v not_o merit_v remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o proper_a work_n either_o of_o god_n law_n or_o of_o man_n tradition_n other_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n what_o gross_a absurdity_n there_o be_v in_o this_o first_o error_n they_o begin_v to_o talk_v more_o modest_o of_o tradition_n but_o yet_o they_o hold_v still_o a_o error_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v bear_v withal_o they_o say_v that_o these_o work_n though_o they_o do_v not_o deserve_v remission_n of_o sin_n yet_o be_v they_o service_n of_o god_n that_o be_v work_n the_o immediate_a end_n whereof_o be_v that_o god_n by_o they_o may_v be_v honour_v this_o error_n also_o must_v be_v stiff_o withstand_v for_o christ_n say_v plain_o they_o worship_v i_o in_o vain_a with_o the_o precept_n of_o man_n and_o paul_n do_v express_o condemn_v will_v worship_v to_o the_o coloss_n and_o see_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n must_v be_v do_v in_o faith_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o may_v testify_v that_o the_o work_n please_v god_n for_o how_o can_v the_o conscience_n offer_v a_o work_n unto_o god_n unless_o there_o be_v a_o voice_n of_o god_n which_o may_v declare_v that_o god_n will_v be_v so_o worship_v or_o serve_v with_o this_o honour_n but_o ungodly_a man_n understand_v this_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n have_v in_o all_o age_n with_o damnable_a boldness_n devise_v worship_n
all_o thing_n and_o shall_v bring_v all_o thing_n to_o your_o remembrance_n which_o i_o have_v show_v you_o again_o he_o shall_v not_o speak_v of_o himself_o but_o what_o he_o have_v hear_v that_o shall_v he_o speak_v out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n of_o tradition_n that_o be_v of_o ceremony_n institute_v in_o the_o church_n by_o man_n authority_n although_o for_o order_n sake_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v some_o decent_a and_o seemly_a ceremony_n yet_o notwithstanding_o man_n that_o 20._o artic._n 20._o be_v give_v to_o superstition_n do_v soon_o pervert_v those_o ceremony_n false_o imagine_v that_o such_o observation_n do_v merit_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v accept_v for_o righteous_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o do_v turn_v the_o sign_n into_o god_n like_v as_o many_o have_v ascribe_v a_o godhead_n unto_o image_n and_o many_o either_o of_o superstition_n or_o by_o tyranny_n do_v heap_n up_o ceremony_n and_o superstition_n have_v increase_v in_o the_o church_n the_o ceremony_n of_o satisfaction_n as_o they_o call_v they_o nebuchadnezar_n and_o antiochus_n because_o they_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o consent_n in_o religion_n be_v available_a to_o the_o peaceable_a government_n of_o their_o kingdom_n do_v ordain_v such_o service_n of_o god_n as_o they_o will_v have_v indifferent_o observe_v of_o all_o their_o subject_n there_o new_a law_n and_o new_a god_n be_v erect_v not_o of_o superstition_n but_o by_o tyranny_n thus_o we_o observe_v that_o among_o man_n true_a and_o false_a religion_n be_v confound_v and_o each_o change_v into_o other_o and_o we_o marvel_v at_o the_o cause_n why_o man_n do_v not_o steadfast_o continue_v in_o the_o truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n pronounce_v that_o man_n be_v set_v on_o by_o devil_n to_o fall_v away_o from_o god_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v blind_a curious_a and_o inconstant_a love_v to_o play_v with_o divers_a opinion_n against_o these_o great_a mischief_n god_n arm_v and_o confirm_v his_o church_n and_o deliver_v a_o sure_a and_o certain_a doctrine_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o in_o the_o creed_n wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o consider_v what_o those_o law_n or_o rite_n be_v and_o whence_o they_o have_v their_o beginning_n the_o first_o rule_n therefore_o be_v this_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o no_o creature_n neither_o for_o angel_n nor_o for_o man_n neither_o for_o king_n nor_o for_o confession_n for_o look_v the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o this_o confession_n bishop_n to_o make_v law_n or_o ordain_v ceremony_n disagree_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n horrible_o sin_v the_o king_n of_o babylon_n although_o he_o excel_v in_o wisdom_n and_o valour_n when_o he_o command_v his_o image_n to_o be_v worship_v and_o all_o man_n do_v sin_n that_o obey_v such_o proclamation_n or_o law_n even_o as_o eve_n sin_v when_o she_o depart_v from_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o the_o lie_a persuasion_n of_o the_o devil_n but_o general_o the_o rule_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v which_o be_v set_v down_o act._n 5._o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n such_o be_v the_o edict_n which_o command_v to_o call_v upon_o dead_a man_n or_o to_o embrace_v false_a doctrine_n or_o to_o use_v ungodly_a worship_n touch_v all_o these_o that_o rule_n of_o the_o first_o commandment_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v 1_o cor._n 10._o fly_v from_o idol_n such_o be_v also_o the_o law_n of_o the_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n which_o many_o can_v not_o observe_v without_o sin_n and_o albeit_o we_o know_v what_o opinion_n politic_a and_o expert_a man_n do_v hold_v of_o the_o change_n of_o law_n yet_o god_n have_v so_o command_v obedience_n that_o still_o he_o will_v have_v we_o fast_o tie_v unto_o himself_o and_o to_o agree_v with_o his_o wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n from_o whence_o do_v arise_v those_o unchangeable_a and_o perpetual_a rule_n exod._n 20._o thou_o shall_v have_v no_o strange_a god_n also_o act._n 5._o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n also_o gal_n 1_o if_o any_o man_n teach_v you_o any_o other_o gospel_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v the_o second_o rule_n for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v usual_a to_o add_v superstition_n to_o those_o work_n which_o otherwise_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v indifferent_a as_o to_o eat_v or_o not_o to_o eat_v flesh_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o reprove_v such_o superstition_n and_o error_n as_o be_v in_o this_o sort_n add_v and_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o liberty_n example_n of_o this_o doctrine_n may_v modest_o be_v show_v and_o that_o error_n be_v not_o among_o the_o least_o which_o the_o folly_n of_o many_o teacher_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o people_n bring_v in_o in_o that_o they_o teach_v and_o think_v that_o fast_a and_o such_o like_a work_n deserve_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n both_o of_o the_o guiltiness_n and_o of_o the_o pain_n as_o both_o thomas_n do_v write_v of_o satisfaction_n and_o many_o also_o do_v say_v the_o same_o this_o pharisaical_a imagination_n easy_o entangle_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o darken_v the_o light_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o benefit_n proper_a to_o christ_n and_o of_o free_a forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o faith_n for_o when_o as_o man_n think_v that_o they_o merit_v remission_n of_o sin_n by_o these_o their_o ceremony_n they_o take_v away_o the_o honour_n due_a unto_o christ_n and_o give_v it_o unto_o these_o ceremony_n and_o be_v somewhat_o puff_v up_o with_o vain_a confidence_n yet_o afterward_o when_o they_o be_v in_o true_a sorrow_n they_o fall_v headlong_o into_o many_o doubt_n which_o turn_v to_o their_o destruction_n and_o of_o itself_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n not_o to_o know_v the_o benefit_n of_o god_n for_o this_o cause_n paul_n so_o earnest_o contend_v for_o the_o abolish_n of_o circumcision_n and_o other_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n for_o fear_n lest_o the_o true_a acknowledgement_n of_o the_o mediator_n may_v be_v clean_o put_v out_o if_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o they_o deserve_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v make_v righteous_a by_o this_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o ceremony_n of_o moses_n as_o the_o pharisee_n do_v avouch_v and_o oftentimes_o paul_n admonish_v to_o beware_v that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o darken_v by_o new_a ceremony_n of_o man_n invention_n this_o second_o error_n be_v not_o so_o evident_a but_o yet_o very_o dangerous_a after_o that_o some_o man_n see_v that_o this_o pharisaical_a error_n can_v be_v defend_v they_o come_v to_o this_o although_o say_v they_o these_o ceremony_n deserve_v not_o remission_n of_o sin_n yet_o be_v these_o tradition_n defend_v because_o they_o be_v good_a work_n and_o service_n of_o god_n as_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n the_o abstinence_n of_o the_o nazarite_n although_o it_o deserve_v not_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n yet_o it_o please_v god_n and_o be_v a_o service_n acceptable_a unto_o god_n with_o this_o colour_n certain_a of_o late_o have_v learned_a to_o paint_v tradition_n which_o yet_o strive_v not_o about_o these_o indifferent_a matter_n but_o go_v about_o to_o establish_v other_o foul_a error_n and_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o power_n of_o bishop_n but_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o godly_a here_o to_o beware_v of_o deceitful_a doctrine_n there_o be_v a_o great_a error_n even_o in_o this_o colourable_a reason_n neither_o be_v that_o example_n well_o allege_v out_o of_o moses_n the_o work_v ordain_v and_o command_v by_o god_n do_v far_o differ_v from_o work_n not_o command_v nor_o ordain_v by_o god_n but_o only_o devise_v by_o man_n invention_n the_o work_v ordain_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v service_n of_o god_n although_o they_o deserve_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o will_v worship_v devise_v by_o man_n neither_o have_v be_v nor_o be_v any_o service_n of_o god_n god_n do_v not_o allow_v this_o boldness_n of_o man_n which_o notwithstanding_o have_v always_o be_v usual_a to_o devise_v new_a worship_n that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v immediate_o intend_v to_o honour_n god_n withal_o therefore_o the_o word_n of_o god_n cry_v out_o matth._n 15._o in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o after_o the_o ordinance_n of_o man_n and_o every_o where_o in_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o paul_n this_o boldness_n be_v reprove_v but_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n be_v those_o work_n that_o he_o have_v command_v which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o acknowledgement_n and_o confidence_n of_o the_o mediator_n to_o the_o end_n that_o god_n may_v be_v obey_v and_o that_o we_o may_v profess_v he_o to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n who_o we_o so_o worship_n so_o also_o ezec._n 20_o he_o call_v we_o back_o to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n say_v walk_v not_o after_o the_o ordinance_n of_o
he_o see_v many_o 2._o plat._n in_o vita_fw-la ●ii_fw-la 2._o more_o and_o more_o weighty_a cause_n why_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v restore_v to_o they_o again_o out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n art_n 5._o of_o abuses_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n whereas_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n make_v honourable_a mention_n of_o marriage_n and_o will_v man_n to_o use_v the_o same_o not_o only_o for_o procreation_n sake_n but_o also_o to_o bridle_v and_o avoid_v lust_n now_o a_o day_n the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n be_v not_o only_o by_o the_o pope_n law_n but_o also_o by_o a_o new_a and_o unwonted_a cruelty_n forbid_v and_o such_o as_o be_v make_v and_o contract_v be_v dissolve_v and_o break_v which_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o unseemly_a for_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n which_o as_o she_o ought_v most_o of_o all_o to_o abhor_v and_o detest_v filthiness_n so_o shall_v she_o with_o great_a care_n defend_v wedlock_n for_o the_o avoid_n of_o many_o grievous_a enormity_n beside_o see_v that_o in_o all_o heathenish_a commonwealth_n that_o be_v but_o mean_o well_o order_v marriage_n be_v in_o great_a account_n for_o very_o weighty_a cause_n what_o be_v there_o less_o seemly_a in_o the_o church_n then_o either_o to_o break_v in_o sunder_o the_o most_o holy_a knot_n of_o wedlock_n or_o to_o punish_v marriage_n with_o punishment_n of_o death_n as_o though_o it_o be_v a_o most_o heinous_a offence_n whence_o be_v it_o that_o this_o cruelty_n have_v spread_v itself_o into_o the_o church_n in_o which_o mutual_a love_n shall_v flourish_v most_o of_o all_o moreover_o the_o matter_n itself_o do_v testify_v how_o much_o beastliness_n and_o how_o many_o villainy_n this_o popish_a law_n of_o single_a life_n do_v bring_v forth_o no_o voice_n of_o man_n be_v able_a to_o show_v how_o many_o vice_n have_v issue_v forth_o of_o this_o fountain_n into_o the_o church_n for_o to_o say_v nothing_o of_o epicure_n who_o blush_v at_o nothing_o how_o many_o good_a and_o godly_a man_n have_v have_v ill_a success_n in_o strive_v with_o their_o natural_a weakness_n and_o at_o the_o last_o have_v fall_v into_o horrible_a despair_n now_o whereto_o tend_v this_o new_a cruelty_n but_o that_o those_o innumerable_a villainy_n may_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o wicked_a man_n may_v sin_v more_o free_o this_o matter_n need_v no_o disputation_n at_o all_o for_o this_o new_a law_n defend_v by_o our_o adversary_n which_o forbid_v priest_n to_o marry_v and_o dissolve_v those_o that_o be_v contract_v be_v flat_a contrary_n to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o constitution_n of_o ancient_a synod_n and_o to_o the_o example_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n only_o in_o this_o call_n we_o need_v the_o godliness_n and_o equity_n of_o the_o most_o excellent_a emperor_n who_o we_o beseech_v for_o his_o godliness_n and_o duty_n sake_n that_o he_o will_v seek_v some_o remedy_n for_o the_o church_n by_o abolish_n this_o tyrannical_a law_n for_o as_o all_o unjust_a cruelty_n do_v displease_v god_n so_o that_o most_o of_o all_o which_o be_v exercise_v against_o godly_a and_o learned_a priest_n which_o deserve_v well_o of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o this_o case_n we_o have_v not_o only_o the_o word_n of_o god_n threaten_v most_o grievous_a plague_n against_o they_o which_o exercise_n cruelty_n on_o the_o priest_n but_o also_o there_o be_v example_n to_o be_v see_v in_o all_o age_n which_o do_v plain_o testify_v that_o such_o threaten_n be_v not_o in_o vain_a for_o to_o let_v pass_v infinite_a other_o example_n the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n be_v almost_o quite_o destroy_v for_o abuse_v the_o priest_n wife_n that_o come_v thither_o as_o a_o stranger_n for_o when_o as_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o woman_n which_o die_v after_o she_o have_v be_v so_o abuse_v be_v cut_v in_o piece_n and_o send_v to_o all_o the_o prince_n of_o israel_n all_o the_o people_n judge_v that_o such_o outrage_n ought_v most_o severe_o to_o be_v revenge_v and_o when_o they_o can_v not_o get_v the_o author_n of_o this_o shameful_a fact_n to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o they_o for_o to_o be_v punish_v the_o whole_a tribe_n of_o benjamin_n receive_v a_o great_a overthrow_n be_v punish_v for_o it_o now_o in_o these_o day_n the_o priest_n be_v vex_v with_o sundry_a injury_n they_o be_v when_o no_o other_o crime_n be_v object_v unto_o they_o but_o marriage_n rack_v with_o most_o horrible_a torment_n and_o so_o put_v to_o death_n their_o miserable_a wife_n and_o little_a child_n be_v throw_v out_o of_o house_n and_o home_n wander_v up_o and_o down_o as_o banish_v person_n without_o any_o certain_a place_n of_o abode_n or_o house_n to_o dwell_v in_o paul_n call_v the_o forbid_v of_o marriage_n the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n which_o to_o be_v true_a not_o only_o these_o filthy_a vice_n which_o the_o single_a life_n have_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n but_o also_o the_o cruelty_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o law_n be_v exercise_v upon_o priest_n and_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n do_v testify_v plain_o for_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o murderer_n and_o he_o be_v chief_o delight_v with_o the_o misery_n of_o the_o godly_a but_o the_o deviser_n of_o such_o counsel_n shall_v one_o day_n have_v their_o just_a reward_n from_o god_n we_o judge_v that_o such_o cruelty_n be_v not_o worthy_a for_o christian_n to_o use_v nor_o profitable_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n whereas_o they_o object_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n law_n why_o do_v they_o not_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o canon_n against_o those_o shameful_a example_n of_o unclean_a single_a life_n and_o those_o villainy_n that_o be_v worthy_a of_o most_o severe_a punishment_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n decree_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v of_o no_o weight_n man_n be_v so_o make_v by_o nature_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v fruitful_a whereupon_o the_o lawyer_n say_v that_o the_o conjunction_n of_o man_n &_o woman_n be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o same_o the_o first_o book_n of_o moses_n teach_v in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o chapter_n again_o when_o saint_n paul_n say_v to_o avoid_v fornication_n let_v every_o man_n have_v his_o wife_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o bid_v all_o which_o be_v not_o apt_a for_o a_o single_a life_n to_o join_v in_o marriage_n and_o christ_n do_v admonish_v that_o all_o be_v not_o fit_a for_o a_o single_a life_n when_o he_o say_v all_o man_n do_v not_o receive_v this_o thing_n moreover_o neither_o man_n law_n nor_o any_o vow_n be_v of_o force_n which_o be_v against_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o event_n itself_o do_v testify_v that_o nature_n can_v be_v change_v by_o man_n law_n for_o we_o see_v what_o vile_a filthiness_n this_o single_a life_n do_v bring_v forth_o and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o honest_a man_n which_o endeavour_v to_o keep_v themselves_o chaste_a they_o perceive_v right_a well_o how_o great_a a_o burden_n how_o great_a danger_n there_o be_v in_o this_o thing_n and_o they_o do_v especial_o be_v wail_v this_o slavery_n of_o their_o order_n certain_a man_n go_v about_o in_o the_o nicene_n synod_n to_o make_v a_o law_n to_o forbid_v priest_n the_o use_n of_o their_o wife_n this_o law_n be_v resuse_v by_o the_o holy_a synod_n and_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o the_o old_a time_n be_v not_o so_o severe_a in_o this_o point_n for_o they_o do_v put_v from_o the_o ministry_n only_o such_o as_o when_o they_o have_v take_v upon_o they_o any_o ecclesiastical_a function_n do_v afterward_o marry_v wife_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o forbid_v marriage_n but_o this_o be_v a_o new_a law_n of_o the_o pope_n unknown_a to_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o synod_n which_o do_v whole_o forbid_v marriage_n and_o break_v of_o such_o as_o be_v contract_v but_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o either_o part_n of_o this_o decree_n be_v flat_a contrary_n to_o the_o gospel_n they_o allege_v against_o we_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o synod_n which_o the_o pope_n themselves_o that_o be_v author_n of_o this_o decree_n do_v impudent_o contemn_v and_o godly_a priest_n do_v evident_o withstand_v this_o new_a law_n for_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n do_v testify_v that_o it_o be_v never_o lay_v upon_o the_o church_n without_o great_a contention_n and_o resistance_n the_o bishop_n of_o tarracon_n write_v to_o syricius_n the_o pope_n that_o the_o priest_n of_o spain_n can_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o admit_v that_o law_n which_o forbid_v they_o the_o use_n of_o their_o wife_n what_o a_o stir_n do_v syricius_n keep_v there_o how_o sharp_o do_v he_o write_v for_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o syricius_n which_o be_v
valiant_a and_o notable_a man_n deserve_v well_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o godly_a man_n as_o gedeon_n ezechias_n josias_n and_o constantine_n and_o sundry_a other_o wherefore_o you_o must_v think_v it_o your_o duty_n also_o to_o take_v heed_n lest_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v godly_a and_o profitable_o bring_v to_o light_n and_o reform_v by_o god_n and_o learned_a man_n be_v smother_v again_o and_o lest_o that_o wicked_a abuse_n be_v establish_v by_o your_o authority_n the_o psalm_n say_v for_o thy_o temple_n sake_n in_o jerusalem_n the_o king_n shall_v offer_v gift_n unto_o thou_o the_o proper_a gift_n that_o king_n be_v to_o bestow_v upon_o the_o church_n be_v to_o search_v out_o true_a doctrine_n and_o to_o see_v that_o good_a teacher_n be_v set_v over_o the_o church_n to_o give_v diligence_n that_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v right_o decide_v not_o to_o take_v away_o true_a and_o holy_a doctrine_n but_o to_o raise_v it_o up_o and_o to_o set_v it_o forward_o and_o to_o defend_v it_o and_o right_o to_o set_v it_o in_o order_n and_o to_o maintain_v the_o quiet_a concord_n of_o the_o church_n by_o these_o true_a gift_n most_o noble_a emperor_n you_o may_v adorn_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o especial_o both_o christ_n himself_o require_v and_o the_o church_n that_o be_v rend_v and_o tear_v in_o most_o horrible_a manner_n do_v crave_v at_o your_o hand_n last_o of_o all_o see_v that_o humane_a tradition_n ought_v to_o give_v place_n to_o time_n and_o opportunity_n especial_o in_o the_o church_n wherein_o there_o shall_v be_v more_o regard_n have_v of_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o godly_a and_o of_o love_n and_o public_a peace_n then_o of_o any_o humane_a tradition_n it_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n better_a to_o make_v show_n of_o abrogate_a this_o silly_a tradition_n of_o single_a life_n then_o to_o strengthen_v lust_n to_o dissolve_v marriage_n to_o exercise_v cruelty_n against_o the_o priest_n and_o their_o wife_n and_o chidren_n to_o oppress_v true_a and_o holy_a doctrine_n and_o to_o make_v havoc_n of_o the_o church_n we_o do_v therefore_o commend_v this_o matter_n of_o their_o marriage_n unto_o your_o piety_n and_o bounty_n o_o noble_a emperor_n as_o that_o which_o have_v no_o difficulty_n or_o doubtfulness_n in_o it_o for_o they_o that_o be_v governor_n both_o may_n and_o aught_o to_o abolish_v a_o unjust_a law_n and_o the_o law_n of_o single_a life_n whether_o they_o be_v new_a or_o old_a belong_v only_o to_o humane_a equity_n in_o mitigate_a whereof_z the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v of_o great_a force_n we_o can_v bring_v very_o many_o example_n out_o of_o the_o history_n of_o all_o time_n and_o country_n in_o which_o there_o may_v be_v see_v horrible_a example_n of_o judgement_n which_o follow_v upon_o unclean_a lust_n among_o many_o other_o cause_n of_o the_o general_a flood_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o fleshly_a lust_n afterward_o five_o city_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o a_o open_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o as_o the_o lake_n call_v asphalites_n be_v leave_v as_o a_o perpetual_a monument_n of_o that_o punishment_n when_o the_o israelite_n be_v depart_v out_o of_o egypt_n and_o divers_a have_v defile_v themselves_o by_o go_v in_o unto_o moabitish_a woman_n the_o twelve_o prince_n of_o the_o tribe_n be_v hang_v up_o and_o twenty_o four_o thousand_o man_n be_v slay_v the_o canaanite_n after_o this_o be_v clean_o root_v out_o and_o among_o the_o cause_n thereof_o incestuous_a copulation_n be_v namely_o reckon_v up_o short_o after_o follow_v the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n for_o abuse_v the_o levite_n wife_n after_o this_o david_n be_v drive_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o adultery_n and_o jeremie_n in_o divers_a place_n cry_v out_o that_o these_o three_o idolatry_n oppression_n and_o adultery_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o those_o great_a calamity_n which_o overwhelm_v the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n then_o when_o they_o be_v carry_v captive_n to_o babylon_n these_o thing_n be_v write_v for_o this_o purpose_n that_o we_o may_v know_v certain_o that_o god_n be_v displease_v with_o wander_a lust_n of_o uncleanness_n and_o that_o unclean_a and_o incestuous_a person_n do_v not_o fall_v into_o punishment_n by_o chance_n but_o be_v punish_v of_o god_n therefore_o the_o destruction_n of_o heathenish_a city_n also_o do_v put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o these_o villainy_n sibaris_fw-la be_v overthrow_v athens_n sparta_n and_o thebes_n be_v toss_v with_o civil_a war_n receive_v due_a punishment_n of_o their_o filthiness_n and_o rome_n when_o it_o bring_v forth_o many_o nero_n and_o heliogabale_n at_o length_n it_o come_v to_o ruin_v the_o empire_n be_v rend_v into_o sundry_a part_n by_o the_o war_n of_o sundry_a barbarous_a nation_n there_o be_v also_o a_o long_a catalogue_n in_o aristotle_n of_o city_n wherein_o there_o happen_v change_n of_o government_n and_o sedition_n for_o unclean_a lust_n beside_o all_o which_o punishment_n paul_n warn_v the_o church_n that_o there_o be_v another_o judgement_n that_o follow_v upon_o these_o lust_n and_o that_o be_v madness_n or_o fury_n as_o it_o be_v write_v rom._n 1._o and_o ephesian_n 4._o and_o it_o may_v well_o be_v that_o this_o judgement_n have_v seize_v upon_o our_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n who_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v open_a epicure_n open_a defender_n of_o idol_n that_o they_o may_v get_v wealth_n and_o authority_n and_o scoff_n at_o those_o heavenly_a say_n which_o threaten_v vengeance_n upon_o idolater_n unclean_a person_n and_o parricide_n they_o vaunt_v that_o they_o do_v all_o thing_n well_o which_o they_o do_v for_o their_o kingdom_n sake_n and_o that_o such_o be_v good_a subject_n and_o love_v quietness_n and_o peace_n that_o allow_v of_o error_n and_o open_a naughtiness_n that_o they_o may_v uphold_v the_o majesty_n of_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n the_o whole_a world_n can_v bear_v witness_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o do_v revenge_v all_o filthiness_n uncleanness_n and_o oppression_n wherefore_o though_o they_o now_o deride_v and_o scoff_n at_o these_o speech_n yet_o let_v they_o know_v that_o they_o shall_v one_o day_n stick_v fast_o in_o those_o punishment_n whereunto_o the_o world_n itself_o do_v call_v they_o see_v then_o it_o be_v a_o clear_a case_n that_o the_o law_n of_o single_a life_n be_v direct_o against_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n we_o think_v that_o the_o priest_n and_o other_o do_v very_o well_o which_o join_v in_o honest_a marriage_n as_o paul_n say_v that_o a_o bishop_n must_v be_v choose_v that_o be_v the_o husband_n of_o one_o wife_n we_o judge_v also_o that_o the_o ruler_n both_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o abolish_v this_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o they_o be_v foul_o deceive_v that_o think_v either_o that_o marriage_n be_v forbid_v to_o priest_n by_o god_n law_n or_o else_o that_o the_o king_n or_o bishop_n may_v make_v a_o law_n to_o forbid_v they_o marriage_n and_o if_o that_o ruler_n will_v not_o help_v the_o church_n in_o this_o behalf_n yet_o the_o godly_a do_v well_o which_o follow_v the_o apostle_n rule_v which_o say_v that_o we_o must_v rather_o obey_v god_n than_o man_n to_o conclude_v see_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o pope_n law_n have_v many_o fault_n join_v with_o it_o as_o namely_o the_o strengthen_n of_o wander_a lust_n superstition_n and_o murder_v of_o godly_a priest_n every_o one_o may_v see_v that_o our_o church_n deal_v well_o in_o abolish_n and_o condemn_v that_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o we_o beseech_v the_o most_o renown_a emperor_n that_o he_o will_v not_o defile_v himself_o with_o defend_v that_o unclean_a single_a life_n and_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o priest_n for_o it_o be_v write_v bless_a be_v he_o that_o have_v pity_n on_o the_o poor_a and_o needy_a the_o lord_n shall_v deliver_v he_o in_o the_o evil_a day_n this_o article_n we_o find_v elsewhere_o place_v in_o the_o second_o place_n among_o those_o wherein_o the_o abuse_n that_o be_v change_v be_v mention_v of_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n art_n 2._o there_o be_v a_o common_a complaint_n of_o the_o example_n of_o such_o priest_n as_o be_v not_o continent_n for_o which_o cause_n also_o pope_n pius_n be_v report_v to_o have_v say_v that_o there_o be_v certain_a cause_n for_o which_o marriage_n be_v forbid_v to_o priest_n but_o there_o be_v many_o weighty_a cause_n why_o it_o shall_v be_v permit_v again_o for_o so_o platina_n write_v when_o as_o therefore_o the_o priest_n among_o we_o fight_v to_o avoid_v these_o public_a offence_n they_o marry_v wife_n and_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o themselves_o to_o join_v in_o marriage_n first_o because_o that_o paul_n say_v to_o avoid_v fornication_n let_v every_o man_n have_v his_o wife_n again_o it_o be_v better_a to_o marry_v then_o to_o burn_v second_o
man_n and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n we_o do_v utter_o dislike_v the_o monastical_a vow_n of_o single_a life_n touch_v other_o cause_n we_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o for_o those_o popish_a law_n and_o vow_n be_v flat_a contrary_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o lord_n say_v it_o be_v not_o good_a for_o man_n to_o be_v alone_o he_o say_v that_o be_v by_o his_o unspeakable_a wisdom_n he_o decree_v in_o this_o sort_n to_o make_v mankind_n that_o by_o the_o society_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n it_o may_v be_v propagate_v and_o he_o make_v they_o two_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o church_n and_o he_o establish_v these_o bound_n that_o lust_n may_v not_o stray_v abroad_o for_o he_o will_v have_v a_o understanding_n of_o chastity_n to_o be_v in_o mankind_n although_o god_n have_v say_v and_o decree_v these_o thing_n yet_o tatianus_n the_o pope_n and_o the_o monk_n do_v say_v the_o contrary_a who_o when_o as_o they_o forbid_v marriage_n do_v give_v occasion_n to_o many_o man_n be_v otherwise_o fit_a unto_o virtue_n to_o heap_v up_o many_o horrible_a sin_n by_o reason_n whereof_o very_a many_o do_v fall_v headlong_o into_o eternal_a destruction_n and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v more_o kindle_v against_o whole_a mankind_n a_o law_n of_o man_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o very_a work_n of_o god_n institute_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o creation_n and_o also_o to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o that_o law_n which_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o great_a wickedness_n and_o heinous_a deed_n for_o the_o which_o both_o many_o do_v perish_v and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v the_o more_o kindle_v yea_o which_o law_n the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v affirm_v to_o have_v it_o beginning_n from_o the_o devil_n be_v in_o no_o case_n to_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o godly_a man_n to_o be_v abolish_v now_o it_o have_v fall_v out_o very_o often_o within_o these_o 30._o year_n that_o priest_n who_o manner_n be_v blameless_a and_o honest_a have_v chief_o be_v put_v to_o death_n because_o they_o be_v marry_v thus_o the_o devil_n go_v about_o to_o establish_v his_o law_n by_o most_o cruel_a murder_n and_o he_o have_v for_o his_o instrument_n most_o impudent_a writer_n ecchius_n faber_n pighius_fw-la who_o have_v express_o write_v that_o a_o priest_n do_v less_o offend_v if_o he_o be_v a_o adulterer_n then_o if_o he_o marry_v a_o wife_n it_o be_v a_o unworthy_a thing_n that_o these_o who_o will_v be_v count_v christian_n shall_v write_v and_o speak_v such_o thing_n wise_a man_n do_v see_v that_o in_o this_o decline_a age_n of_o the_o world_n both_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v more_o weak_a and_o by_o little_a and_o little_a there_o be_v great_a release_n and_o confusion_n of_o discipline_n and_o at_o all_o time_n a_o licence_n in_o this_o kind_n do_v immediate_o go_v before_o the_o destroy_n of_o city_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o kingdom_n therefore_o such_o as_o be_v governor_n oughts_z to_o be_v more_o vigilant_a and_o severe_a in_o maintain_v discipline_n in_o strengthen_v the_o law_n of_o wedlock_n in_o punish_v and_o prohibit_v wander_a lust_n touch_v which_o matter_n we_o rejoice_v that_o our_o admonition_n be_v extant_a for_o all_o posterity_n and_o we_o also_o desire_v the_o son_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o keeper_n of_o his_o church_n and_o a_o true_a lover_n of_o charity_n that_o he_o will_v bow_v the_o mind_n of_o governor_n to_o listen_v to_o wholesome_a counsel_n and_o repress_v the_o devil_n which_o kindle_v the_o flame_n of_o lust_n and_o hinder_v evil_a example_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v far_o spread_v the_o mind_n and_o heart_n of_o all_o godly_a man_n do_v tremble_v when_o they_o read_v and_o hear_v of_o such_o foul_a and_o horrible_a heathenish_a example_n the_o which_o true_o afterward_o be_v accompany_v both_o with_o blindness_n in_o the_o mind_n and_o with_o other_o outrage_n which_o be_v pernicious_a to_o whole_a nation_n as_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o heathen_a example_n do_v every_o where_o offer_v themselves_o to_o all_o man_n the_o scedasians_n have_v cast_v into_o a_o well_o two_o daughter_n of_o spartanus_n be_v deflower_v afterward_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o very_a same_o footstop_n the_o army_n of_o the_o lacedaemonian_n wasslain_a and_o the_o empire_n change_v but_o there_o be_v many_o example_n of_o all_o age_n we_o ourselves_o do_v remember_v that_o certain_a bishop_n who_o be_v famous_a for_o their_o nobility_n and_o their_o wit_n be_v slay_v in_o adultery_n but_o we_o beseech_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o will_v preserve_v many_o and_o bow_v they_o unto_o chastity_n that_o he_o may_v sincere_o be_v invocate_v of_o many_o as_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v allege_v of_o our_o odversary_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o single_a life_n they_o be_v as_o well_o apply_v to_o the_o matter_n as_o that_o say_n of_o christ_n to_o solomon_n which_o tacianus_n do_v allege_v out_o of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o the_o egyptian_n i_o come_v to_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o woman_n tacianus_n do_v thus_o interpret_v it_o i_o come_v to_o destroy_v that_o be_v to_o abolish_v wodlocke_n observation_n wodlocke_n look_v the_o 4._o observation_n whereas_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v speak_v of_o the_o fall_n of_o eve_n and_o of_o the_o misery_n that_o follow_v that_o fall_n as_o also_o john_n do_v write_v the_o son_n of_o god_n come_v to_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n hitherto_o also_o pertain_v the_o 21._o article_n of_o the_o same_o confession_n of_o the_o monasticll_n life_n we_o omit_v a_o large_a rehearsal_n out_o of_o ancient_a writer_n of_o those_o who_o either_o depart_v into_o the_o wilderness_n as_o do_v antonius_n or_o erect_v like_o college_n or_o school_n as_o do_v basilius_n for_o divers_a man_n have_v divers_a cause_n of_o separate_a themselves_o we_o speak_v now_o of_o the_o present_a monk_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o wilderness_n but_o be_v college_n of_o man_n either_o learn_v or_o unlearned_a which_o do_v live_v more_o commodious_o in_o the_o open_a light_n and_o in_o place_n of_o great_a resort_n than_o other_o man_n do_v they_o have_v those_o pleasure_n which_o they_o desire_v some_o one_o some_o another_o and_o they_o have_v much_o more_o leisure_n than_o other_o man_n have_v that_o live_v either_o in_o civil_a or_o in_o domestical_a affair_n neither_o do_v they_o now_o transfer_v unto_o themselves_o those_o ridiculous_a praise_n of_o perfection_n and_o of_o a_o contemplative_a life_n as_o in_o time_n past_o some_o do_v and_o see_v that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n in_o divers_a society_n of_o man_n we_o will_v not_o preach_v to_o the_o evil_a who_o for_o the_o kitchen_n and_o all_o licentiousness_n do_v love_n those_o dark_a place_n but_o those_o of_o who_o there_o be_v hope_n of_o amendment_n we_o do_v earnest_o request_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o their_o own_o salvation_n that_o they_o will_v think_v upon_o these_o say_n thou_o shall_v have_v no_o strange_a go_n fly_v from_o idol_n what_o manner_n of_o thing_n be_v the_o monastical_a life_n now_o adays_o it_o have_v very_o much_o wicked_a worship_n and_o vanity_n their_o mass_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a they_o set_v out_o to_o sale_n and_o this_o be_v the_o great_a gain_n that_o monastery_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v there_o be_v use_v invocation_n of_o the_o dead_a heap_v up_o with_o very_a foul_a superstition_n as_o with_o the_o adore_v of_o image_n with_o indulgence_n and_o other_o juggle_a trick_n the_o study_n of_o doctrine_n be_v either_o none_o at_o a●l_n or_o very_o corrupt_a these_o only_a cause_n be_v great_a enough_o why_o man_n which_o be_v not_o profane_a aught_o to_o depart_v out_o of_o such_o society_n because_o that_o the_o vow_n which_o wrap_v they_o in_o a_o kind_n of_o life_n wherein_o be_v the_o worship_n of_o idol_n be_v without_o doubt_n frustrate_v according_a to_o the_o first_o commandment_n which_o be_v immovable_a eternal_a and_o the_o rule_n of_o all_o other_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v have_v no_o strange_a god_n exod._n 20._o they_o do_v bring_v a_o testimony_n out_o of_o paul_n 1_o tim._n 5._o concern_v widow_n they_o have_v lose_v their_o first_o faith_n but_o the_o answer_n be_v sure_a and_o clear_a although_o paul_n shall_v speak_v of_o vow_n yet_o will_v he_o in_o no_o case_n allow_v of_o such_o vow_n as_o be_v join_v with_o the_o worship_n of_o idol_n and_o with_o many_o error_n but_o there_o be_v also_o many_o other_o lie_v in_o vow_n they_o promise_v chastity_n and_o poverty_n but_o how_o many_o of_o they_o be_v fit_a to_o lead_v a_o single_a life_n they_o themselves_o do_v know_v and_o touch_v poverty_n they_o know_v
may_v profit_v it_o very_o much_o and_o final_o may_v help_v and_o further_o it_o very_o excellent_o his_o chief_a duty_n be_v to_o procure_v and_o maintain_v peace_n and_o public_a tranquillity_n which_o doubtless_o he_o shall_v never_o do_v more_o happy_o then_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v true_o season_v with_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o true_a religion_n namely_o when_o he_o shall_v after_o the_o example_n of_o most_o holy_a king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n advance_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o pure_a and_o sincere_a faith_n and_o shall_v root_v out_o lie_v and_o all_o superstition_n with_o all_o impiety_n and_o idolatry_n and_o shall_v defend_v the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o indeed_o we_o teach_v that_o the_o care_n of_o religion_n do_v chief_o appertain_v to_o the_o holy_a magistrate_n let_v he_o therefore_o hold_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o look_v that_o nothing_o be_v teach_v contrary_a thereunto_o in_o like_a manner_n let_v he_o govern_v the_o people_n commit_v to_o he_o of_o god_n confession_n god_n look_v the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o this_o confession_n with_o good_a law_n make_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n let_v he_o hold_v they_o in_o discipline_n and_o in_o their_o duty_n and_o in_o obedience_n let_v he_o excrcise_v judgement_n by_o judge_v upright_o let_v he_o not_o accept_v any_o man_n person_n or_o receive_v bribe_n let_v he_o deliver_v widow_n fatherless_a child_n and_o those_o that_o be_v afflict_v from_o wrong_n let_v he_o repress_v yea_o and_o cut_v off_o such_o as_o be_v unjust_a either_o by_o deceit_n or_o by_o violence_n for_o he_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o sword_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a therefore_o let_v he_o draw_v forth_o this_o sword_n of_o god_n against_o all_o malefactor_n 13._o rom._n 13._o seditious_a person_n thief_n or_o murderer_n oppressor_n blasphemer_n perjure_a person_n and_o all_o those_o who_o god_n have_v command_v he_o to_o punish_v or_o execute_v let_v he_o suppress_v stubborn_a heretic_n which_o be_v heretic_n in_o deed_n who_o cease_v not_o to_o blaspheme_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n and_o to_o trouble_v the_o church_n yea_o and_o final_o to_o destroy_v it_o but_o if_o so_o be_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o preserve_v the_o safety_n of_o the_o people_n by_o war_n let_v he_o do_v it_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n so_o that_o he_o first_o seek_v peace_n by_o all_o mean_v possible_a and_o use_v it_o not_o save_v only_o then_o when_o he_o can_v save_v his_o subject_n no_o way_n but_o by_o war_n and_o while_o as_o the_o magistrate_n do_v these_o thing_n in_o faith_n he_o serve_v god_n by_o those_o work_n as_o with_o such_o as_o be_v good_a work_n and_o shall_v receive_v a_o blessing_n from_o the_o lord_n we_o condemn_v the_o anabaptist_n who_o as_o they_o deny_v that_o a_o christian_a man_n shall_v bear_v the_o office_n of_o a_o magistrate_n so_o also_o they_o deny_v that_o any_o man_n can_v just_o be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o the_o magistrate_n or_o that_o the_o magistrate_n may_v make_v war_n or_o that_o oath_n shall_v be_v perform_v to_o the_o magistrate_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n for_o as_o god_n will_v work_v the_o safety_n of_o his_o people_n by_o the_o magistrate_n who_o he_o have_v give_v to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o father_n of_o the_o world_n so_o all_o the_o subject_n be_v command_v to_o acknowledge_v this_o benefit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o magistrate_n therefore_o let_v they_o honour_n and_o reverence_v the_o magistrate_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n let_v they_o love_v he_o favour_v he_o and_o pray_v for_o he_o as_o their_o father_n and_o let_v they_o obey_v all_o his_o just_a and_o equal_a commandment_n final_o let_v they_o pay_v all_o custom_n and_o tribute_n and_o all_o other_o duty_n of_o the_o like_a sort_n faithful_o and_o willing_o observat_fw-la *_o look_v the_o 2._o observat_fw-la and_o if_o the_o common_a safety_n of_o the_o country_n and_o justice_n require_v it_o and_o the_o magistrate_n do_v of_o necessity_n make_v war_n let_v they_o lay_v down_o their_o life_n and_o spend_v their_o blood_n for_o the_o common_a safety_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n willing_o valiant_o and_o cheerful_o for_o he_o that_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o magistrate_n do_v procure_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o he_o we_o condemn_v therefore_o all_o contemner_n of_o magistrate_n as_o rebel_n enemy_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n seditious_a villain_n and_o in_o a_o word_n all_o such_o as_o do_v either_o open_o or_o close_o refuse_v to_o perform_v those_o duty_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v etc._n etc._n the_o conclusion_n we_o beseech_v god_n our_o most_o merciful_a father_n in_o heaven_n that_o he_o will_v bless_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n and_o we_o and_o his_o whole_a people_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o only_a lord_n and_o saviour_n to_o who_o be_v praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n both_o now_o and_o for_o ever_o out_o of_o the_o former_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n of_o magistracy_n see_v that_o every_o magistrate_n be_v of_o god_n his_o chief_a duty_n except_o it_o please_v he_o to_o exercise_v a_o tyranny_n consist_v in_o this_o to_o defend_v religion_n from_o all_o blasphemy_n and_o to_o procure_v it_o and_z as_o the_o prophet_n teach_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o put_v it_o in_o practice_n so_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v in_o which_o part_n true_o the_o first_o place_n be_v give_v to_o the_o pure_a and_o free_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o instruction_n of_o the_o youth_n of_o citizen_n and_o a_o right_a and_o diligent_a teach_n in_o school_n lawful_a discipline_n a_o liberal_a provision_n for_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o diligent_a care_n for_o the_o poor_a second_o to_o judge_v the_o people_n according_a confession_n according_a look_v the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o this_o confession_n to_o just_a and_o divine_a law_n to_o keep_v judgement_n and_o justice_n to_o maintain_v this_o public_a peace_n to_o cherish_v the_o commonwealth_n and_o to_o punish_v the_o offender_n according_a to_o the_o quantity_n of_o the_o fault_n in_o their_o riches_n body_n or_o life_n which_o thing_n when_o he_o do_v he_o perform_v a_o due_a worship_n or_o service_n to_o god_n we_o know_v that_o though_o we_o be_v free_a we_o ought_v whole_o in_o a_o true_a faith_n holy_o to_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o the_o magistrate_n both_o with_o our_o body_n and_o with_o all_o our_o good_n and_o endeavour_v of_o mind_n also_o to_o perform_v faithfulness_n and_o observat_fw-la and_o look_v the_o 2._o observat_fw-la the_o oath_n which_o we_o make_v to_o he_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o his_o government_n be_v not_o evident_o repugnant_a to_o he_o for_o who_o sake_n we_o do_v reverence_v the_o magistrate_n out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o basill_n of_o magistracy_n moreover_o god_n have_v assign_v to_o the_o magistrate_n who_o be_v his_o minister_n the_o sword_n and_o chief_a external_a power_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o good_a and_o to_o take_v revenge_n and_o punishment_n of_o the_o 13._o rom._n 13._o evil_a therefore_o every_o christian_a magistrate_n confession_n magistrate_n look_v the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o this_o confession_n in_o the_o number_n whereof_o we_o also_o desire_v to_o be_v do_v direct_v all_o his_o strength_n to_o this_o that_o among_o those_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o his_o credit_n the_o name_n of_o god_n may_v be_v sanctify_v his_o kingdom_n may_v be_v enlarge_v and_o man_n may_v live_v according_a to_o his_o will_n with_o a_o earnest_a root_n out_o of_o all_o naughtiness_n and_o in_o the_o margin_n this_o duty_n also_o be_v enjoin_v to_o the_o heathenish_a magistrate_n how_o much_o more_o to_o the_o christian_a magistrate_n ought_v it_o to_o be_v commend_v as_o to_o the_o true_a substitute_n of_o god_n also_o art_n 11._o sect._n 1._o 3._o and_o 4._o we_o do_v clear_o protest_v that_o together_o with_o all_o other_o doctrine_n which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o sound_n and_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o do_v not_o only_o not_o receive_v but_o as_o abomination_n and_o blasphemy_n reject_v and_o condemn_v those_o strange_a and_o erroneous_a doctrine_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o hurly-burly_n among_o other_o damnable_a opinion_n do_v bring_v forth_o say_v etc._n etc._n that_o magistrate_n can_v be_v christian_n and_o in_o the_o margin_n the_o magistrate_n do_v then_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o good_a magistrate_n when_o he_o be_v a_o true_a christian_a the_o conclusion_n last_o of_o all_o we_o submit_v this_o our_o confession_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o bible_n and_o therefore_o we_o promise_v that_o if_o out_o of_o the_o foresay_a scripture_n we_o may_v be_v better_o
ought_v rather_o to_o obey_v god_n than_o man_n whereof_o also_o be_v to_o be_v domi●●●_n causa_fw-la 11._o ●●●est_fw-la 3._o cap._n st_o domi●●●_n see_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o old_a father_n and_o of_o the_o canon_n law_n where_o they_o thus_o write_v and_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o st._n jerome_n if_o the_o lord_n or_o magistrate_n command_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n let_v the_o servant_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o lord_n but_o if_o he_o command_v any_o thing_n contrary_a let_v he_o rather_o obey_v the_o lord_n of_o his_o spirit_n then_o of_o his_o body_n and_o a_o little_a after_o if_o it_o be_v good_a which_o the_o emperor_n command_v do_v the_o will_n of_o he_o that_o command_v if_o it_o be_v evil_a answer_n we_o ought_v rather_o to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n the_o conclusion_n and_o hitherto_o have_v be_v inform_v and_o show_v unto_o your_o majesty_n in_o this_o write_n the_o reason_n and_o cause_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n and_o christian_a religion_n such_o doctrine_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o our_o church_n all_o and_o singular_a every_o one_o according_a to_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n grant_v unto_o he_o do_v with_o one_o consent_n of_o judgement_n hold_v talk_v of_o and_o preach_v and_o do_v constant_o maintain_v and_o fight_v for_o the_o same_o not_o with_o the_o power_n of_o this_o world_n but_o by_o holy_a scripture_n against_o those_o that_o impugn_v it_o or_o by_o teach_v do_v spread_v abroad_o contrary_a error_n thereunto_o neither_o yet_o without_o that_o modesty_n that_o become_v the_o profession_n of_o christian_n do_v they_o stubborn_o rather_o then_o rigorous_o persist_v in_o this_o doctrine_n or_o have_v at_o any_o time_n heretofore_o persist_v but_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v find_v herein_o not_o well_o take_v by_o they_o and_o that_o by_o certain_a ground_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o judgement_n unto_o all_o man_n peaceable_o and_o with_o a_o meek_a spirit_n as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v be_v show_v unto_o they_o they_o be_v ready_a and_o forward_o and_o thereunto_o as_o always_o heretofore_o so_o now_o they_o offer_v themselves_o that_o after_o due_a consideration_n and_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n have_v they_o will_v most_o glad_o and_o thankful_o receive_v that_o doctrine_n which_o shall_v have_v better_a foundation_n and_o willing_o reform_v whatsoever_o shall_v have_v need_n to_o be_v amend_v wherefore_o most_o excellent_a king_n and_o gracious_a lord_n may_v it_o please_v your_o majesty_n to_o examine_v this_o our_o confession_n and_o after_o diligent_a and_o due_a consideration_n have_v to_o way_n and_o consider_v whether_o any_o man_n worthy_o and_o for_o just_a cause_n may_v reject_v and_o condemn_v this_o doctrine_n as_o not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o christian_n very_o we_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o if_o any_o man_n presume_v to_o despise_v or_o condemn_v this_o doctrine_n he_o must_v of_o necessity_n also_o condemn_v the_o holy_a scripture_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v take_v and_o the_o ancient_a and_o true_a christian_a doctor_n with_o who_o it_o agree_v and_o also_o the_o holy_a church_n itself_o which_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o constant_o so_o have_v and_o do_v teach_v and_o hereby_o your_o majesty_n may_v gracious_o perceive_v and_o determine_v whether_o the_o complaint_n and_o accusation_n of_o our_o adversary_n and_o such_o as_o favour_v not_o we_o and_o our_o teacher_n be_v just_a or_o no._n wherefore_o must_v humble_o we_o pray_v that_o your_o sacred_a majesty_n will_v give_v no_o place_n or_o credit_n to_o our_o adversary_n in_o those_o matter_n which_o divers_a way_n without_o any_o ground_n they_o charge_v we_o withal_o when_o as_o without_o all_o humanity_n they_o accuse_v we_o our_o minister_n and_o preacher_n as_o if_o we_o have_v another_o religion_n and_o teach_v another_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o at_o this_o present_a we_o offer_v unto_o your_o majesty_n or_o that_o we_o presume_v stubborn_o to_o take_v in_o hand_n or_o do_v attempt_v any_o other_o thing_n against_o god_n and_o your_o majesty_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o commonwealth_n and_o to_o the_o public_a law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o bohemia_n and_o your_o majesty_n may_v well_o call_v to_o your_o remembrance_n that_o we_o have_v every_o way_n and_o at_o all_o time_n behave_v ourselves_o obedient_o and_o peaceable_o and_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o may_v turn_v or_o belong_v to_o the_o preservation_n of_o your_o majesty_n person_n and_o to_o the_o public_a good_a and_o commodity_n of_o the_o whole_a realm_n in_o all_o such_o thing_n i_o say_v we_o have_v endeavour_v not_o to_o be_v behind_o other_o and_o hereafter_o also_o we_o offer_v ourselves_o most_o ready_a to_o perform_v the_o same_o according_a to_o our_o allegiance_n and_o duty_n neither_o do_v we_o think_v it_o only_o a_o point_n of_o virtue_n and_o to_o appertain_v unto_o honesty_n alone_o and_o the_o good_a estate_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n to_o yield_v ourselves_o subject_a and_o faithful_a to_o your_o majesty_n for_o peace_n concord_n and_o the_o reward_n of_o this_o life_n but_o much_o rather_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o please_v god_n and_o that_o so_o be_v his_o will_n that_o every_o one_o for_o conscience_n sake_n shall_v be_v obedient_a to_o the_o magistrate_n and_o shall_v reverence_v love_n honour_n and_o high_o esteem_v he_o even_o as_o our_o teacher_n also_o do_v deal_n both_o with_o we_o and_o with_o the_o people_n to_o perform_v this_o and_o oftentimes_o by_o teach_v out_o of_o the_o word_n do_v enforce_v it_o upon_o we_o both_o here_o we_o commend_v ourselves_o unto_o your_o majesty_n as_o to_o the_o fatherly_a and_o liberal_a tuition_n care_n and_o protection_n of_o our_o most_o gracious_a lord_n and_o do_v most_o humble_o beseech_v of_o your_o majesty_n that_o unto_o these_o thing_n which_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o christian_a religion_n we_o have_v tender_v unto_o your_o majesty_n we_o may_v receive_v a_o courteous_a answer_n and_o such_o as_o god_n may_v be_v please_v withal_o the_o almighty_a and_o everlasting_a god_n gracious_o preserve_v your_o majesty_n in_o continual_a health_n to_o the_o profit_n benefit_n and_o increase_v of_o his_o holy_a christian_a church_n amen_n proverb_n 20._o mercy_n and_o truth_n preserve_v the_o king_n for_o his_o throne_n be_v establish_v with_o mercy_n out_o of_o the_o french_a confession_n we_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v have_v the_o world_n to_o be_v govern_v 39_o artic._n 39_o by_o law_n and_o by_o civil_a government_n that_o there_o may_v be_v certain_a bridle_n whereby_o the_o immoderate_a desire_n of_o the_o world_n may_v be_v restrain_v and_o that_o therefore_o he_o appoint_v kingdom_n commonwealth_n and_o other_o kind_n of_o principality_n whether_o they_o come_v by_o inheritance_n or_o otherwise_o and_o not_o that_o alone_o but_o also_o whatsoever_o pertain_v to_o the_o state_n of_o righteousness_n as_o they_o call_v it_o whereof_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v the_o author_n therefore_o he_o have_v also_o deliver_v the_o sword_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o magistrate_n to_o wit_n that_o offence_n may_v be_v repress_v not_o only_o those_o which_o be_v commit_v against_o the_o second_o table_n but_o also_o against_o the_o first_o therefore_o because_o of_o the_o author_n of_o this_o order_n we_o must_v not_o only_o suffer_v they_o to_o rule_v who_o he_o have_v set_v over_o we_o but_o also_o give_v unto_o they_o all_o honour_n and_o reverence_n as_o unto_o his_o ambassador_n and_o minister_n assign_v of_o he_o to_o execute_v a_o lawful_a and_o holy_a function_n also_o art_n 40._o therefore_o we_o affirm_v that_o we_o must_v obey_v the_o law_n and_o statute_n that_o tribute_n must_v be_v pay_v and_o that_o we_o must_v patient_o endure_v the_o other_o burden_n to_o conclude_v that_o we_o must_v willing_o suffer_v the_o yoke_n of_o subjection_n although_o the_o magistrate_n be_v infidel_n so_o that_o the_o sovereign_a government_n of_o god_n do_v remain_v whole_a or_o entire_a and_o nothing_o diminish_v therefore_o we_o detest_v all_o those_o which_o do_v reject_v all_o kind_n of_o dominion_n and_o bring_v in_o a_o community_n and_o confusion_n of_o good_n and_o who_o to_o conclude_v do_v go_v about_o to_o overthrow_v all_o order_n of_o law_n out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o belgia_n we_o believe_v that_o the_o most_o gracious_a and_o mighty_a god_n do_v 36._o artic._n 36._o appoint_v king_n prince_n and_o magistrate_n because_o of_o the_o corruption_n and_o depravation_n of_o mankind_n and_o that_o it_o be_v his_o will_n that_o this_o world_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o law_n and_o by_o a_o certain_a civil_a government_n to_o punish_v the_o fault_n of_o man_n and_o that_o all_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v in_o good_a order_n among_o
obser_n 1._o pag._n 155._o even_o of_o goodness_n be_v in_o no_o case_n to_o be_v so_o high_o esteem_v as_o those_o which_o be_v command_v of_o god_n understand_v this_o of_o those_o work_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o will-worship_n and_o devise_n of_o man_n brain_n for_o such_o be_v whole_o to_o be_v reject_v as_o be_v also_o say_v of_o such_o a_o little_a after_o that_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n but_o contrary_a to_o faith_n upon_o the_o same_o by_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o fall_v not_o into_o mortal_a sin_n look_v the_o 2._o 157._o obser_n 2_o pag._n 157._o observation_n upon_o the_o saxony_n confession_n in_o the_o 4._o section_n upon_o the_o same_o first_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o be_v for_o divers_a cause_n whereof_o this_o be_v one_o 157._o obs_a 3._o pag._n 157._o lest_o that_o the_o grace_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o have_v already_o etc._n etc._n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n the_o gospel_n bewray_v our_o sin_n these_o word_n seem_v thus_o to_o be_v 163._o obser_n 1._o pag._n 163._o understand_v that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v bewray_v all_o kind_n of_o sin_n yet_o not_o proper_o and_o by_o itself_o for_o the_o proper_a difference_n between_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v fast_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o gospel_n do_v proper_o reprove_v the_o sin_n of_o infidelity_n and_o by_o a_o accident_n all_o other_o sin_n also_o but_o the_o law_n do_v proper_o reprove_v all_o sin_n whatsoever_o be_v commit_v against_o it_o upon_o the_o same_o and_o deserve_v reward_n touch_v the_o word_n of_o merit_v or_o deserve_v 169._o obser_n 2_o pag._n 169._o which_o this_o confession_n use_v oft_o in_o this_o section_n look_v before_o in_o the_o 8._o sect._n the_o 7._o observation_n upon_o this_o same_o confession_n and_o look_v the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o wirtemberge_n in_o this_o section_n and_o again_o after_o in_o the_o 16._o section_n the_o 1._o observation_n on_o this_o confession_n upon_o the_o same_o live_v in_o mortal_a sin_n look_v before_o in_o the_o 4._o sect._n the_o 2._o observation_n 167._o obser_n 3._o pag._n 167._o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n nor_o the_o righteousness_n of_o work_n look_v before_o in_o the_o 4._o section_n 167._o obser_n 4._o pag._n 167._o the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n upon_o the_o same_o and_o like_v as_o the_o preach_n of_o repentance_n in_o general_a so_o the_o promise_n 169._o obser_n 5._o pag._n 169._o of_o grace_n general_n that_o be_v offer_v to_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n indefinite_o as_o well_o to_o one_o as_o to_o another_o without_o difference_n of_o country_n sex_n place_n time_n or_o age_n but_o we_o can_v conceive_v how_o repentance_n and_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v preach_v universal_o to_o every_o nation_n much_o less_o to_o all_o man_n particular_o for_o as_o much_o as_o experience_n do_v plain_o prove_v that_o to_o be_v untrue_a upon_o the_o same_o here_o need_v no_o disputation_n of_o predestination_n even_o as_o we_o do_v 169._o obser_n 6._o pag._n 169._o abhor_v curious_a disputation_n that_o be_v such_o as_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o god_n word_n touch_v predestination_n of_o which_o sort_n we_o take_v these_o word_n to_o be_v mean_v as_o most_o dangerous_a matter_n for_o grievous_a fall_v so_o we_o affirm_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v teach_v touch_v this_o point_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v wary_o and_o wise_o to_o be_v propound_v and_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o other_o part_n of_o christian_a religion_n which_o thing_n the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n both_o old_a and_o new_a do_v and_o among_o the_o rest_n master_n luther_n himself_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr servo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la and_o elsewhere_o upon_o the_o same_o that_o they_o be_v necessary_a we_o take_v they_o to_o be_v necessary_a because_o 173._o observe_v 7._o page_n 173._o they_o do_v necessary_o follow_v the_o true_a faith_n whereby_o we_o be_v justify_v not_o that_o they_o concur_v unto_o the_o work_n of_o our_o justification_n in_o christ_n as_o either_o principal_a or_o secundarie_n cause_n for_o that_o faith_n itself_o as_o it_o be_v a_o inherent_a quality_n do_v not_o justify_v but_o only_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o do_v apprehend_v and_o lay_v hold_v on_o christ_n our_o righteousness_n upon_o the_o same_o albeit_o that_o man_n by_o their_o own_o strength_n be_v able_a to_o do_v outward_a 175._o observe_v 8._o page_n 175._o honest_a deed_n etc._n etc._n look_v in_o the_o 4._o sect._n the_o 3._o observation_n upon_o this_o confession_n upon_o the_o same_o moreover_o nature_n by_o itself_o be_v weak_a without_o christ_n and_o without_o 175._o observe_v 9_o page_n 175._o regeneration_n the_o nature_n of_o man_n can_v do_v nothing_o but_o sin_n for_o god_n by_o his_o grace_n do_v create_v the_o hability_n of_o think_v willing_a and_o do_v well_o not_o help_v the_o old_a man_n in_o that_o he_o want_v but_o by_o little_a and_o little_a abolish_n it_o according_a to_o that_o say_n when_o we_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n etc._n etc._n ephes_n 2._o but_o touch_v the_o weakness_n of_o our_o nature_n look_v that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o bohemia_n section_n 4._o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n because_o that_o god_n leave_v this_o liberty_n in_o man_n after_o this_o fall_n here_o also_o 181._o obser_n 1._o pag._n 181._o look_v in_o the_o 4._o sect._n the_o 1._o observe_v upon_o the_o confession_n of_o bohemia_n and_o the_o 3._o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n upon_o the_o same_o therefore_o although_o man_n by_o the_o natural_a strength_n look_v here_o 190._o obser_n 2._o pag._n 190._o again_o the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o bohemia_n in_o the_o 4._o section_n and_o also_o the_o 9_o observation_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n in_o this_o same_o section_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o wirtemberge_n we_o teach_v that_o good_a work_n be_v necessary_o to_o be_v do_v and_o do_v 198._o obser_n 1._o pag._n 198._o deserve_v etc._n etc._n that_o be_v obtain_v and_o that_o as_o it_o be_v well_o add_v by_o and_o by_o after_o by_o the_o free_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n touch_v which_o point_n look_v the_o 7._o observe_v upon_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n in_o the_o 8._o sect._n the_o 2._o observe_v upon_o the_o same_o confession_n in_o this_o sect._n also_o touch_v the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n look_v the_o 7._o observe_v upon_o the_o same_o confession_n in_o this_o self_n same_o section_n in_o the_o ten_o section_n upon_o the_o latter_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n and_o no_o marvel_n if_o it_o err_v how_o and_o in_o what_o respect_n the_o visible_a 206._o obser_n 1._o pag._n 206._o church_n consider_v universal_o be_v say_v to_o err_v it_o be_v afterward_o declare_v more_o full_o in_o this_o same_o confession_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o bohemia_n the_o heathenish_a life_n this_o say_v the_o brethren_n in_o bohemia_n do_v 213._o obser_n 1._o pag._n 213._o themselves_o expound_v thus_o unto_o we_o in_o their_o letter_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n which_o be_v all_o joint_o to_o be_v consider_v that_o look_v where_o both_o the_o error_n of_o idolater_n and_o heretic_n and_o impiety_n of_o life_n do_v open_o overflow_v there_o it_o can_v safe_o be_v affirm_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v see_v or_o be_v at_o all_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n to_o be_v make_v but_o some_o secret_a true_a member_n of_o christ_n and_o such_o as_o it_o may_v be_v be_v only_o know_v to_o god_n be_v there_o hide_v and_o therefore_o that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n even_o in_o popery_n as_o it_o be_v overwhelm_v and_o drown_v whence_o god_n will_v fetch_v out_o his_o elect_a and_o gather_v they_o to_o the_o visible_a church_n that_o be_v restore_v and_o reform_v whereas_o popery_n never_o be_v nor_o be_v the_o true_a church_n upon_o the_o same_o but_o he_o that_o lose_v in_o what_o sense_n we_o think_v that_o a_o true_a faith_n 214._o observe_v 2._o page_n 214._o may_v be_v lose_v we_o have_v declare_v before_o in_o the_o four_o section_n in_o the_o first_o observation_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n and_o elsewhere_o upon_o the_o same_o by_o ecclesiastical_a punishment_n which_o be_v common_o call_v etc._n etc._n we_o 215._o observe_v 3._o page_n 215._o take_v this_o to_o be_v so_o mean_v as_o that_o notwithstanding_o every_o church_n have_v her_o liberty_n leave_v unto_o she_o what_o way_n to_o exercise_v such_o discipline_n as_o be_v before_o say_v in_o the_o first_o observation_n upon_o this_o same_o confession_n in_o the_o 8._o section_n as_o for_o this_o
upon_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n upon_o the_o same_o that_o every_o christian_a so_o often_o as_o he_o need_v these_o key_n etc._n etc._n aught_o 252._o observe_v 8._o page_n 252._o to_o require_v they_o this_o be_v to_o be_v interpret_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o private_a absolution_n in_o the_o eight_o section_n in_o the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o this_o confession_n and_o the_o first_o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n upon_o the_o same_o that_o the_o priest_n ought_v not_o who_o they_o mean_v by_o the_o name_n 252._o observe_v 9_o page_n 252._o of_o priest_n it_o have_v be_v already_o show_v before_o in_o the_o 2._o observation_n upon_o the_o former_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n and_o shall_v straight_o after_o be_v repeat_v in_o the_o 3._o observation_n upon_o the_o english_a confession_n in_o which_o signification_n it_o be_v henceforward_o to_o be_v take_v in_o all_o the_o confession_n upon_o the_o english_a confession_n and_o be_v lucifer_n it_o be_v grow_v to_o a_o custom_n to_o call_v satan_n lucifer_n 255._o observe_v 1._o pag._n 255._o the_o prince_n of_o devil_n upon_o a_o place_n of_o esay_n misunderstand_v of_o some_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n upon_o the_o same_o by_o open_a excommunication_n there_o be_v also_o a_o certain_a kind_n of_o excommunication_n 256._o observe_v 2._o page_n 256._o which_o be_v not_o public_a or_o open_a and_o be_v use_v only_o for_o a_o trial_n of_o repentance_n again_o this_o be_v so_o to_o be_v take_v that_o as_o we_o have_v oft_o before_o admonish_v all_o and_o singular_a church_n may_v keep_v their_o holy_a liberty_n both_o in_o ordain_v and_o put_v in_o practice_n this_o manner_n of_o discipline_n so_o that_o there_o be_v good_a heed_n take_v that_o the_o flock_n be_v not_o infect_v with_o a_o contagion_n of_o obstinacy_n and_o that_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n be_v not_o cast_v to_o dog_n and_o swine_n upon_o the_o same_o unto_o the_o unbelieved_a a_o savour_n of_o death_n this_o must_v be_v understand_v 256._o obs_a 3._o pag._n 256._o to_o be_v the_o accidental_a and_o not_o the_o proper_a end_n of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n arise_v not_o of_o the_o gospel_n itself_o but_o of_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o this_o application_n of_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o key_n for_o the_o open_n of_o all_o man_n conscience_n which_o this_o confession_n do_v often_o use_v seem_v to_o be_v somewhat_o far_o from_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o same_o that_o the_o priest_n in_o deed_n touch_v the_o name_n of_o priest_n look_v 256._o obser_n 4._o pag._n 256._o the_o 2._o observation_n upon_o the_o former_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n again_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o when_o the_o question_n be_v of_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n the_o lawful_a intelligence_n of_o the_o signiory_n must_v go_v before_o the_o priest_n judge_v that_o which_o be_v say_v touch_v power_n or_o authority_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o civil_a power_n which_o ecclesiastical_a function_n have_v not_o at_o all_o or_o else_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o make_v law_n to_o man_n conscience_n which_o rest_v whole_o in_o christ_n the_o only_a lawgiver_n according_a to_o who_o prescript_n and_o appointment_n his_o minister_n ought_v to_o judge_v and_o determine_v in_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o same_o yea_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o a_o little_a after_o except_o he_o go_v to_o 257._o obser_n 5._o pag._n 257._o work_v by_o bishop_n understand_v not_o he_o that_o now_o sit_v pope_n at_o rome_n be_v call_v of_o other_o and_o term_v himself_o universal_a bishop_n but_o such_o a_o paster_n as_o be_v lawful_o call_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o there_o be_v any_o true_a church_n to_o be_v find_v do_v with_o his_o fellow_n laborer_n discharge_v a_o christian_a ministry_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n no_o more_o than_o do_v the_o skill_n of_o music_n namely_o because_o it_o have_v 259._o obser_n ●_o pag._n 259._o a_o divers_a scope_n not_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o affinity_n or_o agreement_n between_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n and_o the_o civil_a government_n then_o between_o a_o musician_n and_o a_o magistrate_n when_o as_o they_o do_v both_o tend_v direct_o unto_o the_o self_n same_o only_a though_o by_o mean_n distinct_a and_o diverse_a one_o from_o the_o other_o and_o also_o both_o the_o minister_n in_o matter_n civil_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o magistrate_n and_o the_o magistrate_n in_o matter_n belong_v to_o conscience_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n and_o one_o do_v lean_a and_o stay_v itself_o upon_o the_o other_o and_o one_o aid_n and_o succour_v the_o other_o upon_o the_o same_o the_o magistrate_n be_v to_o defend_v not_o the_o mind_n but_o the_o body_n this_o 259._o obser_n 1._o pag._n 259._o also_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o that_o notwithstanding_o this_o the_o magistrate_n be_v the_o keeper_n and_o defender_n of_o both_o table_n of_o this_o law_n upon_o the_o same_o if_o so_o be_v the_o bishop_n have_v etc._n etc._n this_o do_v we_o also_o acknowledge_v 260._o obs_a 3._o pag._n 260._o to_o be_v most_o true_a but_o we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o lawful_a for_o the_o prince_n to_o derive_v this_o power_n unto_o bishop_n nor_o for_o the_o bishop_n to_o take_v it_o when_o it_o be_v offer_v because_o the_o lord_n have_v so_o distinguish_v these_o two_o as_o he_o have_v also_o sever_v they_o the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o and_o the_o apostle_n do_v express_o forbid_v minister_n to_o entangle_v themselves_o in_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n yea_o and_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v cast_v off_o even_o the_o care_n of_o the_o alm_n from_o themselves_o unto_o the_o deacon_n that_o they_o may_v attend_v upon_o the_o word_n and_o prayer_n upon_o the_o same_o to_o debar_v the_o wicked_a etc._n etc._n to_o wit_n by_o the_o judgement_n and_o 260._o obs_a 4._o pag._n 260._o verdict_n of_o the_o presbytery_n lawful_o gather_v together_o and_o not_o by_o the_o will_n and_o determination_n of_o any_o one_o man_n as_o be_v note_v before_o in_o the_o three_o observation_n upon_o the_o english_a confession_n upon_o the_o same_o the_o church_n must_v perform_v unto_o they_o to_o wit_n to_o the_o minister_n 260._o obser_n 5._o pag._n 260._o of_o the_o word_n and_o to_o the_o elder_n and_o not_o to_o such_o alone_a as_o now_o by_o the_o law_n of_o man_n carry_v the_o name_n of_o bishop_n as_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o themselves_o alone_o which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o pastor_n equal_o as_o hierome_n can_v testify_v upon_o the_o same_o if_o so_o be_v they_o have_v any_o other_o power_n etc._n etc._n they_o have_v it_o by_o man_n law_n 260._o observat_fw-la 6._o pag_n 260._o it_o seem_v the_o band_n of_o marriage_n shall_v be_v except_v the_o knowledge_n whereof_o by_o god_n law_n belong_v to_o the_o pastor_n and_o namely_o in_o this_o respect_n that_o it_o can_v be_v judge_v firm_a and_o sure_a or_o void_a and_o frustrate_a but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n according_a to_o that_o that_o which_o god_n have_v couple_v let_v no_o man_n put_v asunder_o touch_v which_o point_n look_v the_o 1._o observation_n upon_o the_o former_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n and_o the_o 2._o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o wirtemberge_n in_o the_o 18._o section_n upon_o the_o same_o christ_n though_o christ_n will_v also_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o circumcision_n 262._o observat_fw-la 7._o pag_n 262._o yet_o we_o will_v not_o have_v he_o range_v in_o the_o same_o order_n with_o other_o whether_o they_o be_v prophet_n or_o apostle_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o wirtemberge_n if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o mediator_n of_o pray_v look_v the_o 2._o observation_n 265._o obs_a 1._o pag._n 265._o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n in_o the_o 1._o section_n upon_o the_o same_o that_o except_o a_o priest_n be_v ordain_v to_o wit_n when_o question_n be_v of_o 266._o obser_n 2._o pag._n 266._o such_o elder_n or_o priest_n as_o do_v attend_v upon_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n for_o there_o be_v also_o another_o sort_n of_o elder_n who_o the_o apostle_n call_v governor_n 1_o cor._n 12._o in_o the_o twelve_o section_n upon_o the_o latter_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n the_o thing_n signify_v be_v regeneration_n that_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 273._o observat_fw-la 1._o pag._n 273._o by_o virtue_n whereof_o we_o be_v regenerate_v and_o wash_v from_o our_o sin_n for_o to_o speak_v proper_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o water_n be_v the_o blood_n and_o by_o sprinkle_v the_o wash_n from_o sin_n and_o regeneration_n be_v signify_v upon_o the_o former_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n the_o thing_n itself_o be_v regeneration_n look_v the_o observation_n that_o 275._o obser_n 1._o pag._n 275._o obser_n 2._o pag._n 275._o go_v next_o before_o upon_o the_o
some_o diocese_n be_v subject_a to_o some_o one_o man_n and_o be_v even_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o jerome_n himself_o a_o old_a invention_n of_o man_n appointment_n and_o not_o of_o god_n ordinance_n limit_v and_o hedge_v in_o by_o very_a many_o ancient_a canon_n but_o as_o for_o the_o three_o kind_n which_o rove_v far_o and_o wide_a not_o only_o beyond_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o also_o beyond_o the_o most_o just_a canon_n and_o be_v indeed_o satanical_a and_o tyrannical_a and_o as_o yet_o flourish_v in_o the_o roman_a false_a name_v church_n we_o do_v detest_v it_o as_o a_o most_o certain_a pestilence_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n upon_o the_o same_o it_o be_v for_o the_o chief_a bishop_n gentleness_n we_o suppose_v that_o this_o 411._o observat_fw-la 2._o pag._n 411._o be_v not_o mean_v of_o the_o pope_n gentleness_n who_o all_o the_o pure_a church_n do_v at_o once_o detest_v as_o that_o antichrist_n but_o of_o that_o kind_n of_o bishop_n which_o in_o the_o observation_n next_o before_o this_o we_o call_v the_o second_o sort_n which_o though_o it_o be_v so_o yet_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v against_o the_o old_a canon_n that_o that_o shall_v here_o be_v hang_v upon_o the_o bishop_n gentleness_n which_o after_o lawful_a intelligence_n they_o be_v rather_o bind_v to_o do_v both_o by_o god_n law_n and_o by_o man_n or_o else_o they_o be_v to_o be_v remove_v from_o their_o bishopric_n upon_o the_o same_o to_o have_v rule_v take_v from_o bishop_n it_o be_v without_o all_o controversy_n 411._o observe_v 3._o page_n 411._o that_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o distinguish_v but_o also_o both_o by_o word_n and_o his_o own_o example_n sever_v the_o civil_a rule_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o the_o ecclesiastical_a beside_o that_o be_v also_o a_o plain_a case_n that_o the_o good_n purpose_v and_o appoint_v to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n be_v in_o old_a time_n give_v not_o to_o the_o bishop_n own_o person_n but_o to_o the_o church_n itself_o now_o how_o far_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v carry_v the_o show_n and_o appearance_n of_o any_o civil_a rule_n and_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o godly_a magistrate_n to_o consider_v upon_o the_o same_o the_o apostle_n decree_v touch_v thing_n offer_v to_o idol_n etc._n etc._n to_o wit_n 414._o observe_v 4._o page_n 414._o touch_v that_o sort_n of_o thing_n offer_v to_o idol_n which_o be_v eat_v at_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n or_o by_o the_o eat_n whereof_o man_n sin_v against_o their_o weak_a brethren_n like_a as_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v expound_v of_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 9_o and_o 10._o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n not_o lawful_a for_o king_n nor_o bishop_n to_o make_v law_n or_o rite_n that_o 416._o observe_v 1._o pag._n 416._o can_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o word_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o no_o mystical_a rite_n that_o be_v which_o carry_v some_o mystery_n or_o hide_a signification_n in_o they_o though_o not_o otherwise_o impious_a as_o namely_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v part_n of_o god_n doctrine_n or_o kind_n of_o sacrament_n but_o only_o such_o law_n as_o pertain_v to_o order_n and_o decency_n as_o be_v say_v in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o article_n and_o that_o not_o upon_o their_o private_a will_n and_o advise_v but_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o lawful_a assembly_n in_o the_o eighteen_o section_n upon_o the_o former_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n but_o upon_o just_a cause_n etc._n etc._n to_o wit_n take_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 424._o observe_v 1._o page_n 424._o for_o we_o do_v not_o think_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o man_n at_o their_o pleasure_n to_o make_v law_n concern_v divorcement_n in_o marriage_n permit_v and_o already_o contract_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o they_o may_v do_v in_o contract_n which_o be_v mere_o civil_a for_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v that_o which_o god_n have_v join_v together_o let_v no_o man_n separate_v but_o the_o matter_n be_v diligent_o weigh_v by_o they_o of_o who_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o church_n that_o counsel_n shall_v be_v ask_v concern_v such_o matter_n as_o be_v not_o mere_o civil_a the_o civil_a magistrate_n may_v prescribe_v in_o his_o jurisdiction_n what_o affinity_n and_o upon_o what_o condition_n it_o may_v stand_v with_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o common_a peace_n to_o have_v permit_v or_o forbid_v upon_o the_o confession_n of_o bohemia_n either_o to_o choose_v it_o to_o himself_o or_o to_o refuse_v it_o to_o wit_n if_o he_o be_v 425._o obser_n 1._o pag._n 425._o thorough_o privy_a to_o himself_o of_o his_o own_o strength_n and_o so_o that_o he_o do_v not_o bind_v himself_o by_o a_o vow_n as_o it_o be_v expound_v a_o little_a after_o upon_o the_o same_o and_o woman_n minister_n that_o be_v of_o those_o who_o have_v willing_o submit_v 426._o obser_n 2._o pag._n 426._o themselves_o to_o take_v care_n for_o the_o hospital_n and_o for_o the_o poor_a and_o those_o that_o be_v sick_a who_o notwithstanding_o the_o apostle_n do_v forbid_v to_o be_v receive_v before_o they_o be_v threescore_o year_n old_a 1_o tim._n 5._o 9_o and_o general_o he_o forbid_v woman_n all_o other_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n upon_o the_o same_o they_o do_v preserve_v the_o pureness_n as_o well_o of_o the_o spirit_n as_o of_o the_o body_n 426._o observat_fw-la 3._o pag._n 426._o etc._n etc._n to_o wit_n resist_v the_o burn_a for_o otherwise_o the_o pureness_n both_o of_o the_o body_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n be_v preserve_v in_o wedlock_n of_o marry_a party_n that_o use_v it_o holy_o upon_o the_o same_o to_o take_v counsel_n of_o the_o elder_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n 428._o obser_n 4._o pag._n 428._o etc._n etc._n understand_v this_o of_o he_o who_o shall_v be_v take_v into_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n be_v a_o single_a man_n as_o for_o the_o most_o part_n it_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o bohemia_n yet_o without_o any_o vow_n or_o constraint_n and_o with_o no_o prejudice_n to_o other_o church_n which_o do_v not_o observe_v this_o difference_n for_o this_o necessity_n of_o go_v to_o and_o ask_v counsel_n of_o the_o presbytery_n it_o be_v not_o lay_v upon_o other_o concern_v which_o thing_n we_o will_v not_o think_v it_o much_o to_o set_v down_o in_o this_o place_n what_o the_o brethren_n themselves_o of_o bohemia_n do_v heretofore_o answer_v to_o a_o certain_a godly_a and_o learned_a man_n admonish_v they_o of_o these_o thing_n that_o no_o man_n may_v be_v offend_v with_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v read_v both_o in_o this_o place_n and_o elsewhere_o in_o their_o confession_n touch_v the_o single_a life_n of_o minister_n the_o meaning_n say_v they_o of_o single_a life_n be_v evident_o declare_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o article_n that_o it_o be_v not_o ordain_v of_o god_n by_o any_o commandment_n neither_o do_v we_o place_v any_o dignity_n of_o the_o ministry_n in_o single_a life_n we_o do_v without_o doubt_n believe_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o that_o gift_n be_v give_v to_o some_o and_o to_o who_o it_o be_v not_o give_v for_o they_o it_o be_v free_a to_o marry_v we_o have_v by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n both_o marry_v and_o unmarried_a minister_n and_o we_o endeavour_v to_o keep_v a_o mean_a in_o this_o matter_n the_o monkish_a custom_n and_o other_o absurd_a thing_n we_o have_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n remove_v far_o out_o of_o our_o church_n thus_o do_v they_o write_v that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o expound_v themselves_o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o saxony_n also_o we_o keep_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n touch_v other_o near_a 445._o observe_v 1._o page_n 445._o degree_n etc._n etc._n our_o church_n also_o do_v herein_o attribute_v some_o thing_n to_o the_o degree_n of_o cousin_n germane_a to_o avoid_v the_o offence_n of_o those_o that_o be_v weak_a see_v that_o even_o certain_a profane_a lawmaker_n have_v forbid_v this_o degree_n and_o christian_n charity_n do_v command_v we_o to_o depart_v even_o from_o cur_n right_a in_o those_o thing_n which_o of_o themselves_o be_v lawful_a for_o their_o sake_n that_o be_v weak_a but_o we_o admonish_v the_o people_n diligent_o that_o they_o do_v not_o think_v that_o this_o degree_n be_v forbid_v in_o itself_o that_o be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n either_o express_v or_o understand_v which_o be_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n as_o for_o other_o inferior_a degree_n of_o affinity_n and_o whatsoever_o that_o law_n be_v not_o canonical_a but_o tyrannical_a have_v decree_v as_o though_o it_o be_v spiritual_a concern_v corporal_a affinity_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o civil_a law_n we_o do_v abolish_v and_o detest_v it_o as_o proceed_v from_o the_o
only_a inspiration_n of_o the_o lie_a spirit_n upon_o the_o same_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o canon_n law_n etc._n etc._n we_o will_v have_v it_o declare_v 446._o obser_n 2._o pag._n 446._o unto_o we_o what_o manner_n of_o law_n this_o canon_n law_n be_v see_v that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n both_o in_o certain_a ancient_a and_o especial_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o pope_n flat_a repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o equity_n upon_o the_o same_o as_o mortal_a sin_n and_o such_o as_o expel_v the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n why_o we_o 446._o observe_v 3._o 446._o do_v think_v that_o this_o also_o have_v need_n to_o be_v more_o diligent_o expound_v we_o have_v show_v not_o once_o before_o look_v the_o 4._o sect._n observe_v 1._o and_o 2._o upon_o this_o same_o confess_v also_o sect._n 8._o observe_v 4._o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o auspurge_n upon_o the_o same_o where_o as_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v speak_v etc._n etc._n if_o so_o be_v that_o we_o 448._o obs_a 4._o pag._n 448._o shall_v admit_v that_o gospel_n according_a to_o the_o egyptian_n wherein_o those_o word_n be_v attribute_v to_o christ_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o wirtemberge_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n etc._n etc._n to_o wit_n a_o spiritual_a marriage_n 451._o observe_v 1._o 451._o between_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o not_o this_o carnal_a or_o corporal_a and_o humane_a marriage_n which_o be_v not_o appoint_v to_o represent_v that_o other_o which_o be_v spiritual_a upon_o the_o same_o the_o politic_a law_n which_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n we_o 451._o obser_n 2_o pag._n 451._o also_o do_v approve_v the_o politic_a law_n touch_v these_o thing_n so_o that_o the_o conscience_n be_v not_o snare_v and_o that_o which_o in_o this_o contract_n be_v mere_o divine_a be_v administer_v according_a to_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n be_v distinguish_v from_o civil_a controversy_n which_o fall_v out_o in_o marriage_n look_v before_o observation_n 1._o upon_o the_o former_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n in_o the_o nineteenth_o section_n upon_o the_o latter_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n with_o good_a law_n make_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v 458._o obs_a 1._o pag._n 458._o with_o such_o as_o do_v not_o forbid_v that_o which_o god_n do_v command_v in_o the_o moral_a law_n and_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o nature_n itself_o nor_o command_v that_o which_o he_o forbid_v for_o otherwise_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o judaical_a civil_a law_n may_v also_o be_v understand_v to_o the_o which_o not_o withstand_v we_o be_v not_o bind_v in_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v civil_a but_o only_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o a_o general_a and_o perpetual_a rule_n of_o justice_n upon_o the_o former_a confession_n of_o helvetia_n according_a to_o just_a and_o divine_a law_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v agreeable_a to_o 400._o observe_v 1._o pag_n 400._o equity_n and_o righteousness_n and_o to_o conclude_v to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n whereof_o god_n himself_o be_v the_o author_n upon_o the_o same_o and_o the_o oath_n which_o we_o make_v to_o he_o etc._n etc._n that_o be_v a_o oath_n whereby_o 460._o obser_n 2._o pag._n 460._o subject_n be_v bind_v to_o their_o magistrate_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o basil_n in_o the_o number_n whereof_o we_o also_o desire_v to_o be_v etc._n etc._n these_o thing_n be_v 461._o obser_n 1._o pag._n 461._o speak_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o magistrate_n themselves_o and_o not_o of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n at_o basil_n in_o so_o much_o as_o this_o confession_n be_v publish_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o magistrate_n themselves_o upon_o the_o confession_n of_o bohemia_n the_o people_n be_v teach_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o obey_v no_o man_n more_o then_o 464._o obser_n 1._o pag._n 464._o god_n this_o be_v so_o far_o to_o be_v extend_v as_o that_o we_o must_v understand_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o obey_v any_o in_o these_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o conscience_n and_o to_o salvation_n but_o god_n alone_o see_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o except_o so_o much_o as_o the_o angel_n themselves_o gal._n 1._o the_o end_n of_o the_o harmony_n and_o of_o the_o observation_n a_o general_n confession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o act_n of_o our_o parliament_n subscribe_v by_o the_o king_n majesty_n and_o his_o household_n with_o sundry_a other_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o good_a example_n of_o all_o man_n at_o edinborough_n the_o 28._o day_n of_o january_n the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1581._o and_o in_o the_o 14._o year_n of_o his_o majesty_n reign_n we_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o we_o under_o write_v protest_v that_o after_o long_a and_o due_a examination_n of_o our_o own_o conscience_n in_o matter_n of_o true_a and_o false_a religion_n be_v now_o thorough_o resolve_v in_o the_o truth_n by_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o believe_v with_o our_o heart_n confess_v with_o our_o mouth_n subscribe_v with_o our_o hand_n and_o constant_o affirm_v before_o god_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o this_o only_a be_v the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n please_v god_n and_o bring_v salvation_n to_o man_n which_o be_v now_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n reveal_v to_o the_o world_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o bless_a evangell_n and_o be_v receive_v believe_v and_o defend_v by_o many_o and_o sundry_a notable_a church_n and_o realm_n but_o chief_o by_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n the_o king_n majesty_n and_o three_o estate_n of_o this_o realm_n as_o god_n eternal_a truth_n and_o only_a ground_n of_o our_o salvation_n as_o more_o particular_o be_v express_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o faith_n establish_v and_o public_o confirm_v by_o sundry_a act_n of_o parliament_n and_o now_o of_o a_o long_a time_n have_v be_v open_o profess_v by_o the_o king_n majesty_n and_o whole_a body_n of_o this_o realm_n both_o in_o burgh_n and_o land_n to_o the_o which_o confession_n and_o form_n of_o religion_n we_o willing_o agree_v in_o our_o conscience_n in_o all_o point_n as_o unto_o god_n undoubted_a truth_n and_o verity_n ground_v only_o upon_o his_o write_a word_n and_o therefore_o we_o abhor_v and_o detest_v all_o contrary_a religion_n and_o doctrine_n but_o chief_o all_o kind_n of_o papistry_n in_o general_a and_o particular_a head_n even_o as_o they_o be_v now_o damn_v and_o confute_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o church_n of_o scotland_n but_o especial_o we_o detest_v and_o refuse_v the_o usurp_a authority_n of_o that_o roman_a antichrist_n upon_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o church_n the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o conscience_n of_o man_n all_o his_o tyrannous_a law_n make_v upon_o indifferent_a thing_n against_o our_o christian_a liberty_n his_o erroneous_a doctrine_n against_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o write_a word_n the_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n the_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o bless_a evangell_n his_o corrupt_a doctrine_n concern_v original_a sin_n our_o natural_a inability_n and_o rebellion_n to_o god_n law_n our_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o our_o imperfect_a sanctification_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n the_o nature_n number_n and_o use_v of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n his_o five_o bastard_n sacrament_n with_o all_o his_o rite_n ceremony_n and_o false_a doctrine_n add_v to_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o true_a sacrament_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n his_o cruel_a judgement_n against_o infant_n depart_v without_o the_o sacrament_n his_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o baptism_n his_o blasphemous_a opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n or_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o element_n and_o receive_v of_o the_o same_o by_o the_o wicked_a or_o body_n of_o man_n his_o dispensation_n with_o solemn_a oath_n perjury_n and_o degree_n of_o marriage_n forbid_v in_o the_o word_n his_o cruelty_n against_o the_o innocent_a divorce_v his_o devilish_a mass_n his_o blasphemous_a priesthood_n his_o profane_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o quick_a his_o canonization_n of_o man_n call_v upon_o angel_n or_o saint_n depart_v worship_v of_o image_n relic_n and_o cross_n dedicate_a of_o church_n altar_n day_n vow_n to_o creature_n his_o purgatory_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a pray_v or_o speak_v in_o a_o strange_a language_n with_o his_o procession_n and_o blasphemous_a litany_n and_o multitude_n of_o advocate_n or_o mediator_n his_o manifold_a order_n auricular_a confession_n his_o disperse_a &_o uncertain_a repentance_n his_o general_n and_o doubt_v some_o faith_n his_o satisfaction_n of_o man_n for_o their_o sin_n his_o justification_n by_o work_n opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la work_v of_o supererogation_n merit_n pardon_n peregrination_n and_o station_n his_o holy_a
moment_n be_v prone_a and_o ready_a to_o offend_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o give_v witness_v to_o our_o spirit_n 3_o rom_n 3_o that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n make_v we_o to_o resist_v filthy_a pleasure_n and_o to_o groan_v in_o god_n presence_n for_o deliverance_n from_o this_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n and_o final_o so_o triumph_v over_o sin_n that_o it_o reign_v not_o in_o our_o mortal_a body_n this_o battle_n have_v not_o the_o carnal_a man_n be_v destitute_a of_o god_n spirit_n but_o do_v follow_v and_o obey_v sin_n with_o greediness_n and_o without_o repentance_n even_o as_o the_o devil_n and_o their_o corrupt_a lust_n do_v prick_v they_o but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o before_o be_v say_v do_v fight_n against_o sin_n do_v sob_n and_o mourn_v when_o they_o perceive_v themselves_o tempt_v in_o iniquity_n and_o if_o they_o fall_v they_o rise_v again_o with_o unfeigned_a repentance_n and_o these_o thing_n they_o do_v not_o by_o their_o own_o power_n but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n without_o who_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o 15._o john_n 15._o what_o work_n be_v repute_v good_a before_o god_n we_o confess_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o god_n have_v give_v to_o man_n his_o holy_a law_n in_o which_o not_o only_o be_v forbid_v all_o 5._o exod._n 20._o deut._n 5._o such_o work_n as_o displease_v and_o offend_v his_o godly_a majesty_n but_o also_o be_v command_v all_o such_o as_o please_v he_o and_o as_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o reward_v and_o these_o work_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o one_o be_v do_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n the_o other_o to_o the_o profit_n of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o both_o have_v the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n for_o their_o assurance_n to_o have_v one_o god_n to_o worship_n and_o honour_v he_o to_o call_v upon_o he_o in_o all_o our_o trouble_n to_o reverence_v his_o holy_a name_n to_o hear_v his_o word_n to_o believe_v the_o same_o to_o communicate_v with_o his_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o first_o table_n to_o honour_v father_n mother_n prince_n ruler_n and_o superior_a power_n to_o love_v they_o to_o support_v they_o yea_o to_o obey_v their_o charge_n not_o repugn_v the_o commandment_n of_o 6._o ephes_n 6._o god_n to_o save_v the_o life_n of_o innocent_n to_o repress_v tyranny_n to_o defend_v the_o oppress_v to_o keep_v our_o body_n clean_a and_o holy_a to_o live_v in_o soberness_n and_o temperance_n to_o deal_v just_o with_o all_o man_n both_o in_o word_n and_o deed_n and_o final_o to_o repress_v all_o appetite_n of_o our_o neighbour_n 2._o ez●ch_o 22._o jer._n 22._o esa_n 50._o 1_o thess_n 4._o luke_n 2._o hurt_n be_v the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o second_o table_n which_o be_v most_o please_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n as_o those_o work_n that_o be_v command_v by_o himself_o the_o contrary_a whereof_o be_v sin_n most_o odious_a which_o always_o displease_v he_o and_o provoke_v he_o to_o anger_n as_o not_o to_o call_v upon_o he_o alone_o when_o we_o have_v need_n not_o to_o hear_v his_o word_n with_o reverence_n to_o contemn_v and_o despise_v it_o to_o have_v or_o to_o worship_n idol_n to_o maintain_v and_o defend_v idolatry_n light_o to_o esteem_v the_o reverend_a name_n of_o god_n to_o profane_v abuse_n or_o contemn_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n jesus_n to_o disobey_v or_o resist_v 22._o rom._n 11._o ez_fw-fr ch_n 22._o any_o that_o god_n have_v place_v in_o authority_n while_o they_o pass_v not_o over_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o office_n to_o murder_v or_o to_o consent_v thereto_o to_o bear_v hatred_n or_o to_o iuffer_v innocent_a blood_n to_o be_v shed_v if_o we_o may_v withstand_v it_o and_o final_o the_o transgression_n of_o any_o other_o commandment_n in_o the_o first_o or_o second_o table_n we_o confess_v or_o affirm_v to_o be_v sin_n by_o the_o which_o god_n hate_v and_o displeasure_n be_v kindle_v against_o the_o proud_a and_o unthankful_a world_n so_o that_o good_a work_n we_o affirm_v to_o be_v those_o only_a that_o be_v do_v in_o faith_n and_o at_o god_n commandment_n who_o in_o his_o law_n have_v express_v what_o the_o thing_n be_v that_o please_v he_o and_o evil_a work_n we_o affirm_v not_o only_o those_o that_o express_o be_v do_v against_o god_n commandment_n but_o those_o also_o that_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o worship_v of_o god_n have_v no_o other_o assurance_n but_o the_o invention_n and_o opinion_n of_o man_n which_o god_n 15._o esa_n 26._o mat._n 15._o from_o the_o beginning_n have_v ever_o reject_v as_o by_o the_o prophet_n esay_n and_o by_o our_o master_n christ_n jesus_n we_o be_v teach_v in_o these_o word_n in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n and_o precept_n of_o man_n the_o perfection_n of_o the_o law_n and_o imperfection_n of_o man_n the_o law_n of_o god_n we_o confess_v and_o acknowledge_v most_o just_a most_o equal_a most_o holy_a and_o most_o perfect_a command_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v wrought_v in_o perfection_n be_v able_a to_o give_v 4._o rom._n 7._o psal_n 19_o deut._n 5._o rom._n 10._o 1_o john_n 1_o rom._n 10._o gal_n 3_o deut._n 26._o ephes_n 1._o rom_n 4._o light_n and_o able_a to_o bring_v man_n to_o eternal_a felicity_n but_o our_o nature_n be_v so_o corrupt_a so_o weak_a and_o so_o unperfit_a that_o we_o be_v never_o able_a to_o fulfil_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n in_o perfection_n yea_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n even_o after_o we_o be_v regenerate_v we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o verity_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o we_o and_o therefore_o it_o behove_v we_o to_o apprehend_v christ_n jesus_n with_o his_o justice_n and_o satisfaction_n who_o be_v the_o end_n and_o accomplishment_n of_o the_o law_n by_o who_o we_o be_v set_v at_o this_o liberty_n that_o the_o curse_n and_o malediction_n of_o god_n fall_v not_o upon_o we_o albeit_o we_o fulfil_v not_o the_o same_o in_o all_o point_n for_o god_n the_o father_n behold_v we_o in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o son_n christ_n jesus_n accept_v our_o imperfect_a obedience_n as_o it_o be_v perfect_a and_o cover_v our_o work_n which_o be_v defile_v with_o many_o spot_n with_o the_o justice_n of_o his_o son_n we_o do_v not_o mean_v that_o we_o be_v so_o set_v at_o liberty_n that_o we_o owe_v no_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n for_o that_o before_o we_o have_v plain_o confess_v but_o this_o we_o affirm_v that_o no_o man_n in_o earth_n christ_n jesus_n only_o except_v have_v give_v give_v or_o shall_v give_v in_o work_n that_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n which_o the_o law_n require_v but_o when_o we_o have_v do_v all_o thing_n we_o must_v fall_v down_o and_o unfeigned_o confess_v that_o we_o be_v 10._o luke_n 10._o unprofitable_a servant_n and_o therefore_o whosoever_o boast_n themselves_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o own_o work_n or_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o the_o work_n of_o supererogation_n boast_v themselves_o of_o that_o which_o be_v naught_o and_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o damnable_a idolatry_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o believe_v in_o one_o god_n father_n son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o do_v we_o most_o constant_o believe_v that_o from_o the_o begin_n there_o have_v be_v and_o now_o be_v and_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v 8._o matth_n 3._o 8._o one_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o company_n and_o multitude_n of_o man_n choose_v of_o god_n who_o right_o worship_n and_o embrace_v he_o by_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v the_o only_a head_n of_o the_o same_o 5._o eph●s_fw-la 1._o col._n 1._o eph●●_n 5._o church_n which_o also_o be_v the_o body_n and_o spouse_n of_o christ_n jesus_n which_o church_n be_v catholic_a that_o be_v universal_a because_o it_o contain_v the_o elect_a of_o all_o age_n of_o all_o realm_n nation_n and_o tongue_n be_v they_o of_o the_o jew_n or_o be_v they_o of_o the_o gentile_n who_o have_v communion_n and_o society_n 7._o apoc._n 7._o with_o god_n the_o father_n and_o with_o his_o son_n christ_n jesus_n through_o the_o sanctification_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n &_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v the_o communion_n not_o of_o profane_a person_n but_o of_o saint_n who_o as_o citizen_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n have_v the_o fruition_n of_o the_o most_o inestimable_a benefit_n to_o wit_n of_o one_o god_n one_o lord_n jesus_n one_o faith_n and_o of_o one_o 2._o eph●s_fw-la 2._o baptism_n out_o of_o the_o which_o church_n there_o be_v neither_o life_n nor_o eternal_a felicity_n and_o therefore_o we_o utter_o abhor_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o those_o that_o affirm_v that_o man_n which_o live_v according_a to_o equity_n and_o 6._o jo●_a 5._o 6._o justice_n shall_v be_v save_v what_o religion_n
holy_a ghost_n do_v quicken_v our_o heart_n when_o as_o by_o faith_n they_o be_v raise_v up_o in_o this_o comfort_n as_o paul_n say_v galat._n 3_o that_o you_o may_v receive_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n through_o faith_n therefore_o we_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o a_o idle_a faith_n and_o the_o unskilful_a be_v deceive_v while_o they_o think_v that_o remission_n of_o sin_n do_v happen_v to_o such_o as_o be_v idle_a without_o a_o certain_a motion_n of_o the_o mind_n without_o wrestle_v and_o without_o a_o feel_a comfort_n of_o in_o true_a grief_n in_o that_o age_n which_o now_o be_v able_a to_o understand_v the_o voice_n of_o doctrine_n according_a to_o that_o say_n faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o because_o that_o in_o repentance_n we_o propound_v comfort_n unto_o the_o conscience_n confess_v conscience_n look_v the_o 6._o observation_n upon_o the_o august_n confess_v we_o do_v not_o here_o add_v question_n of_o predestination_n or_o of_o election_n but_o we_o lead_v all_o reader_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o exhort_v they_o to_o learn_v the_o will_n of_o god_n out_o of_o his_o word_n as_o the_o eternal_a father_n by_o express_a voice_n command_v hear_v he_o let_v they_o not_o look_v for_o other_o revelation_n hitherto_o also_o pertain_v the_o five_o article_n of_o new_a obedience_n the_o whole_a benefit_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v for_o he_o will_v so_o take_v away_o sin_n and_o death_n and_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o sin_n be_v altogether_o abolish_v and_o death_n vanquish_v he_o may_v restore_v unto_o we_o eternal_a life_n wherein_o god_n may_v communicate_v unto_o we_o his_o wisdom_n righteousness_n and_o joy_n and_o wherein_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o this_o great_a benefit_n he_o do_v begin_v in_o this_o miserable_a lump_n of_o we_o in_o this_o life_n as_o it_o be_v write_v 2_o cor._n 5._o if_o so_o be_v we_o shall_v be_v find_v clothe_v and_o not_o naked_a also_o matth._n 10._o they_o that_o shall_v continue_v to_o the_o end_n shall_v be_v save_v therefore_o when_o we_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o be_v reconcile_v and_o seal_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v a_o horrible_a madness_n to_o waste_v these_o good_a gift_n as_o these_o waster_n be_v describe_v in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o house_n that_o be_v make_v clean_o and_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o peter_n chap._n 2._o it_o be_v say_v if_o they_o after_o they_o have_v escape_v from_o the_o filthiness_n of_o the_o world_n be_v yet_o tangle_v again_o therein_o and_o overcome_v the_o latter_a end_n be_v worse_a with_o they_o then_o the_o beginning_n now_o these_o good_a gift_n be_v waste_v or_o pour_v out_o if_o a_o man_n do_v not_o hold_v the_o foundation_n that_o be_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o either_o willing_o or_o be_v deceive_v embrace_v wicked_a opinion_n or_o idol_n also_o if_o a_o man_n do_v fall_v grievous_o against_o his_o conscience_n these_o rule_n be_v oftentimes_o repeat_v as_o galat._n 5._o they_o which_o do_v such_o thing_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o have_v a_o care_n to_o avoid_v such_o fall_n if_o this_o manifest_a necessity_n the_o great_a punishment_n to_o wit_n the_o loss_n of_o eternal_a life_n be_v set_v before_o their_o eye_n do_v not_o move_v some_o to_o do_v good_a work_n they_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v 1_o joh._n 3._o he_o that_o commit_v sin_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n also_o if_o any_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v not_o he_o and_o there_o be_v many_o cause_n of_o this_o necessity_n first_o a_o debt_n that_o be_v a_o immutable_a order_n that_o the_o creature_n shall_v obey_v god_n therefore_o paul_n say_v rom._n 8._o you_o be_v debtor_n also_o lest_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o faith_n be_v shake_v of_o let_v there_o be_v a_o care_n to_o avoid_v present_a punishment_n because_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o many_o fall_n even_o of_o the_o elect_n be_v fearful_o punish_v in_o this_o life_n as_o the_o church_n speak_v in_o micheas_n chap._n 7._o i_o will_v bear_v the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n because_o i_o have_v sin_v against_o he_o and_o the_o history_n of_o all_o time_n do_v contain_v fearful_a example_n of_o punishment_n as_o david_n solomon_n manasses_n josias_n nabuchodonozor_n and_o innumerable_a other_o be_v grievous_o punish_v wherein_o this_o be_v most_o to_o be_v lament_v that_o in_o the_o very_a punishment_n many_o sin_n be_v heap_v up_o as_o in_o the_o sedition_n raise_v up_o against_o david_n and_o in_o the_o rent_v of_o the_o kingdom_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o solomon_n and_o touch_v the_o necessity_n of_o do_v good_a work_n the_o lord_n say_v matth._n 5._o except_o your_o righteousness_n exceed_v the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o of_o the_o pharisee_n you_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o necessity_n which_o be_v manifold_a be_v thus_o consider_v there_o question_n ensue_v thereupon_o what_o work_n be_v to_o be_v do_v how_o they_o may_v be_v do_v in_o what_o sort_n they_o do_v please_v god_n what_o reward_v they_o have_v what_o be_v the_o difference_n of_o sin_n section_n sin_n look_v the_o first_o observat_fw-la upon_o this_o confession_n in_o the_o four_o section_n what_o sin_n do_v shake_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o what_o not_o what_o work_n be_v to_o be_v do_v it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o faith_n and_o work_n be_v govern_v by_o his_o word_n therefore_o we_o must_v keep_v the_o rule_n touch_v good_a work_n both_o internal_a and_o external_a contain_v in_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o do_v pertain_v to_o we_o as_o it_o be_v say_v ezech._n 23._o walk_v you_o in_o my_o commandment_n and_o these_o internal_a and_o external_a work_n do_v then_o become_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n when_o they_o be_v do_v in_o faith_n and_o be_v refer_v to_o this_o end_n that_o god_n by_o this_o obedience_n may_v be_v glorify_v now_o we_o have_v show_v before_o that_o even_o the_o unregenerate_a may_v perform_v this_o external_a obedience_n or_o discipline_n as_o cicero_n live_v honest_o and_o for_o his_o pain_n in_o government_n deserve_v well_o of_o all_o mankind_n but_o his_o mind_n be_v full_a of_o doubt_n touch_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v he_o know_v nor_o speak_v unto_o the_o true_a god_n in_o invocation_n neither_o do_v he_o know_v the_o promise_n and_o he_o always_o doubt_v whether_o he_o be_v hear_v especial_o when_o he_o be_v in_o misery_n and_o then_o be_v he_o angry_a with_o god_n and_o think_v that_o he_o be_v unjust_o punish_v see_v he_o be_v a_o honest_a citizen_n and_o profitable_a for_o the_o commonwealth_n such_o darkness_n in_o the_o mind_n be_v great_a sin_n such_o as_o reason_n not_o be_v illuminate_v by_o god_n be_v be_v not_o able_a to_o judge_v of_o therefore_o inward_a obedience_n true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o fear_n of_o god_n sorrow_n in_o repentance_n trust_v to_o obtain_v mercy_n promise_v for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n invocation_n hope_v love_n joy_n in_o god_n and_o other_o virtue_n must_v be_v begin_v also_o in_o the_o regenerate_a and_o they_o must_v be_v refer_v to_o a_o proper_a end_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n may_v be_v obey_v these_o kind_n of_o true_a worship_n can_v be_v give_v unto_o god_n without_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o without_o faith_n which_o our_o adversary_n who_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v jolly_a preacher_n of_o good_a work_n do_v neither_o understand_v nor_o require_v see_v they_o omit_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v a_o confidence_n to_o obtain_v mercy_n rest_v in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v a_o especial_a work_n and_o the_o chief_a worship_n of_o god_n of_o work_n not_o command_v of_o god_n we_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o and_o we_o must_v hold_v fast_o that_o rule_n matth._n 15._o in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o with_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n and_o in_o the_o church_n in_o fall_v out_o oftentimes_o that_o ceremony_n devise_v by_o man_n be_v more_o careful_o keep_v than_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n yea_o the_o authority_n of_o pharisaical_a and_o unjust_a tradition_n be_v prefer_v before_o the_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n as_o in_o many_o age_n for_o the_o unjust_a and_o wicked_a commandment_n of_o single_a life_n the_o commandment_n of_o god_n concern_v true_a chastity_n be_v horrible_o violate_v therefore_o we_o must_v consider_v of_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o law_n whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v again_o hereafter_o how_o good_a work_n may_v be_v do_v great_a be_v the_o infirmity_n of_o man_n
and_o the_o devil_n a_o most_o cruel_a enemy_n who_o for_o the_o hatred_n he_o bear_v to_o god_n rage_v against_o mankind_n and_o do_v endeavour_v all_o that_o he_o can_v especial_o to_o destroy_v the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v write_v of_o peter_n 1_o pet._n 5._o watch_n because_o your_o adversary_n the_o devil_n go_v about_o like_o a_o roar_a lion_n seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v confession_n devour_v look_v the_o 2._o observation_n upon_o this_o confession_n therefore_o although_o man_n by_o their_o natural_a strength_n may_v after_o a_o sort_n perform_v the_o external_a discipline_n yet_o be_v they_o often_o overcome_v by_o this_o common_a infirmity_n and_o the_o devil_n also_o do_v oftentimes_o force_v man_n not_o altogether_o savage_a to_o commit_v horrible_a fact_n as_o he_o deceive_v eve_n and_o compel_v the_o brethren_n of_o joseph_n david_n and_o other_o innumerable_a therefore_o what_o diligence_n or_o what_o advisement_n can_v be_v sufficient_a for_o this_o most_o subtle_a enemy_n here_o let_v we_o lay_v hold_n upon_o that_o most_o sweet_a comfort_n the_o son_n of_o god_n appear_v to_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n 1_o john_n 3_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o keeper_n of_o his_o church_n as_o he_o say_v joh._n 10._o no_o man_n shall_v take_v my_o sheep_n out_o of_o my_o hand_n he_o do_v protect_v we_o and_o also_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n do_v confirm_v our_o mind_n in_o true_a opinion_n as_o he_o do_v begin_v eternal_a life_n so_o do_v he_o kindle_v in_o our_o heart_n good_a motion_n faith_n the_o love_n of_o god_n true_a invocation_n hope_v chastity_n and_o other_o virtue_n we_o be_v not_o pelagian_n but_o we_o do_v humble_o give_v thanks_o to_o the_o eternal_a god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n both_o for_o the_o whole_a benefit_n of_o salvation_n restore_v again_o to_o mankind_n and_o also_o for_o this_o benefit_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v dwell_v in_o the_o church_n and_o do_v defend_v it_o with_o his_o right_a hand_n against_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o man_n and_o do_v drive_v away_o the_o devil_n from_o we_o and_o do_v uphold_v we_o in_o this_o so_o great_a infirmity_n of_o we_o and_o by_o his_o word_n do_v kindle_v in_o our_o mind_n the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o do_v confirm_v and_o govern_v our_o mind_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n we_o do_v certain_o know_v that_o these_o benefit_n be_v indeed_o give_v unto_o we_o as_o it_o be_v say_v most_o comfortable_o in_o zacharie_n chap._n 12._o i_o will_v pour_v out_o upon_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o upon_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o prayer_n he_o name_v the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n because_o that_o in_o this_o comfort_n the_o son_n of_o god_n seal_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n do_v testify_v that_o we_o be_v in_o favour_n and_o that_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n second_o he_o name_v the_o spirit_n of_o prayer_n because_o that_o when_o we_o have_v acknowledge_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n we_o do_v not_o now_o fly_v from_o god_n we_o do_v not_o murmur_v against_o god_n but_o we_o approach_v unto_o he_o with_o true_a faith_n and_o hope_n we_o do_v ask_v and_o look_v for_o help_v at_o his_o hand_n we_o love_v he_o and_o submit_v ourselves_o to_o he_o and_o thus_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o obedience_n wrought_v after_o that_o manner_n say_v the_o lord_n joh._n 14._o i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v kindle_v the_o light_n of_o truth_n in_o our_o mind_n and_o new_a motion_n in_o our_o heart_n agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n let_v we_o acknowledge_v this_o so_o great_a a_o gift_n and_o let_v we_o endeavour_v to_o keep_v it_o thankful_o and_o desire_v daily_a to_o be_v help_v in_o so_o great_a danger_n of_o this_o life_n the_o will_n be_v not_o idle_a when_o it_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n how_o our_o new_a obedience_n do_v please_v god_n the_o pharisee_n in_o luke_n chap._n 18._o do_v admire_v and_o please_v himself_o be_v bewitch_v with_o this_o persuasion_n that_o he_o do_v satisfy_v the_o law_n and_o for_o this_o discipline_n such_o as_o it_o be_v do_v please_v god_n many_o such_o there_o be_v among_o man_n who_o think_v themselves_o secure_a if_o they_o perform_v never_o so_o little_a though_o it_o be_v but_o a_o shadow_n of_o discipline_n but_o the_o heavenly_a voice_n do_v often_o time_n accuse_v the_o arrogancy_n of_o these_o man_n and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v luk._n 13._o except_o you_o repent_v you_o shall_v all_o in_o like_a sort_n perish_v and_o 1_o joh._n 1._o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o be_v liar_n therefore_o their_o imagination_n be_v vain_a which_o think_v that_o obedience_n do_v please_v god_n for_o it_o own_o worthiness_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o merit_n of_o condignity_n as_o they_o speak_v and_o such_o a_o righteousness_n before_o god_n as_o be_v a_o merit_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o yet_o afterward_o they_o do_v add_v that_o we_o must_v always_o doubt_v whether_o our_o obedience_n do_v please_v god_n because_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o in_o every_o one_o there_o be_v much_o pollution_n many_o sin_n of_o ignorance_n and_o omission_n and_o many_o not_o small_a blemish_n here_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o man_n conscience_n shall_v be_v instruct_v aright_o in_o either_o of_o these_o point_n both_o concern_v our_o infirmity_n and_o also_o concern_v the_o comfort_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o regenerate_v shall_v have_v the_o righteousness_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o obedience_n begin_v in_o this_o life_n as_o have_v be_v say_v yet_o nevertheless_o in_o this_o life_n there_o be_v still_o remain_v in_o our_o nature_n in_o our_o soul_n and_o in_o our_o heart_n very_o much_o pollution_n which_o they_o do_v the_o more_o see_v and_o be_v wail_v which_o have_v receive_v more_o light_a than_o other_o as_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n according_a to_o that_o complaint_n of_o paul_n rom._n 7._o i_o see_v another_o law_n in_o my_o member_n which_o strive_v against_o the_o law_n of_o my_o mind_n and_o make_v i_o captive_a to_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n there_o be_v as_o yet_o in_o every_o one_o a_o great_a mist_n manifold_a ignorance_n and_o many_o sorrowful_a doubt_n error_n in_o counsel_n raise_v by_o distrust_n by_o false_a opinion_n and_o a_o vain_a hope_n many_o vicious_a flame_n of_o lust_n much_o neglect_n of_o duty_n murmur_n and_o indignation_n against_o god_n in_o his_o punishment_n to_o conclude_v it_o be_v unsensiblenesse_n and_o madness_n not_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o confess_v that_o the_o fear_n and_o love_n of_o god_n be_v much_o more_o cold_a in_o we_o than_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v these_o confession_n be_v repeat_v in_o the_o sermon_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n psal_n 143._o enter_v not_o into_o judgement_n with_o thy_o servant_n for_o in_o thy_o sight_n shall_v no_o man_n live_v be_v justify_v and_o 1_o joh._n 1._o if_o we_o say_v that_o we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o we_o this_o confession_n be_v necessary_a and_o man_n arrogancy_n to_o be_v reprooved_a also_o the_o error_n of_o our_o adversary_n who_o feign_v that_o man_n in_o this_o mortal_a life_n may_v satinfie_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o of_o those_o who_o say_v that_o the_o evil_a of_o concupiscence_n which_o be_v breed_v with_o we_o be_v not_o sin_n not_o a_o evil_a repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n or_o will_v of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v reprehend_v these_o error_n do_v paul_n manifest_o confute_v rom._n 7._o and_o 8._o then_o must_v comfort_v also_o be_v join_v thereunto_o first_o let_v the_o regenerate_a person_n assure_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o faith_n alone_o that_o be_v by_o confidence_n in_o the_o mediator_n and_o that_o the_o person_n be_v certain_o account_v righteous_a for_o the_o some_o of_o god_n the_o mediator_n and_o that_o free_o for_o his_o merit_n second_o let_v we_o confess_v with_o true_a grief_n that_o there_o remain_v as_o yet_o in_o the_o regenerate_a man_n many_o sin_n and_o much_o pollution_n worthy_a of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n three_o let_v he_o nevertheless_o know_v that_o obedience_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n must_v be_v begin_v in_o this_o life_n and_o that_o this_o obedience_n although_o it_o be_v very_o far_o from_o that_o perfection_n which_o the_o law_n require_v be_v nevertheless_o in_o the_o regenerate_a acceptable_a to_o god_n for_o the_o mediator_n sake_n who_o make_v request_n for_o we_o and_o by_o his_o merit_n do_v